#they were always one-off dates who got sick of his bullshit by the end of the episode like drake parker
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Text
i have to be honest. when ppl bring up how old jason earles was when he played jackson in hannah montana. i do agree it's a little weird but it's strange when ppl adopt the language of it being, like, somehow creepy. he played a high schooler in his late 20s-early 30s. it's not like ppl don't do that on the cw.
#i remember when i found out how old jason earles is. it mustve been 2010#bc thats when i made facebook#he was also really young-looking in the early seasons?? not like he ACTUALLY looks like a teen#also no it's not CREEPY like it would be for someone to pretend to be a teen at that age irl#to my knowledge most of the actresses cast to be his love interest (at least from the top of my head? im not doing a survey)#were not like... teen starlets like miley and emily osment's age#well hmmm i guess there is that episode where he was into his friend cooper's little sister in s1#i dont know how old that actress was. that was a weird episode regardless#but before his serious girlfriend arc (sienna đ¤) he never had a long-term serious love interest anyway#they were always one-off dates who got sick of his bullshit by the end of the episode like drake parker#text post#me the number one defender of hannah montana (2006-2011) created by michael poryes#that show WAS everything to me#it wasn't necessarily high art but it did have a big influence on me and my interests and dreams and blah blah#i dont think i would be the same person if it werent for hannah montana and later on miley cyrus#miley. one of my favs forever. love her always xoxox
7 notes
¡
View notes
Note
So Urm just a thought u got anyâŚ. Deep non curse sukuna angst I think itâs a good day to cry.
-anonđĽ˘
Sukuna is nothing if not self sabotaging.
Things with you have been good. Borderline perfect; youâre the missing piece to the life heâs cursed to live, where heâs always self aware of his weaknesses and takes them out on those around him. There is no blessing, not when all he does it hurt. Itâs a miracle yuuji and choso deal with his shit enough, he knows they shouldâve dropped him off the face of the earth with the pain he causes.
Now, it seems, itâs your turn.
Your turn to be on the receiving end of his fury, his rage and heartbreak, your only chance to escape being to leave him; maybe thatâs all he wants: you to leave him.
He stopped calling you. Stopped answering texts. When his brothers and parents ask about you, he merely stays silent, opting against making you sound more divine than they know you are.
Youâre perfect. Youâre not for him.
Theres a pounding on the door that goes unanswered by everyone in the house, and he groans as he gets up to answer it, only to reveal your frame in the door.
You look distraught. Youâre angry, he can see that in your eyes, thereâs a betrayal buried deep in them. Your face holds a scowl and your breathing picks up at the sight of him.
âYouâve been avoiding me.â
Sukuna rolls his eyes and walks away from the open door, knowing youâll follow him no matter what. âSo?â
âSo?â You ask, offended. âYou and I are supposed to be in love, supposed to be partners in crime-â
âIm hearing a lot of âsupposed to be,â and not a lot of âhave to beââ he snaps. He hears you take a breath to say something, but you donât. He screws his eyes shut. âGet over it. I didnât sign a contract with my blood saying I have to come to your every beck and call.â
âSukuna. Stop.â
âStop what?â
âBeing an asshole,â you say firmly. âLet me in. Iâm here. Whatâs going on?â
âIâm sick of you.â
At his blunt words, you gasp, and sukuna feels the bile rise up his throat. Heâll do anything though. Anything to make you stop loving him. âWhatâŚ?â
âIâm sick. Of you,â he echos. âYou checking up on me, demanding we go out, flaunting me off to your friends like Iâm some damn trophy-â
âBecause I love you!â You hiss. âI want to show you off, make the world see how lucky I am to have you!â
ââShow me off?ââ He cackles, spinning on his heel to face you. âThereâs nothing to show. I am nothing to you. You, are nothing to me.â
You reel back at his words, waterline swelling with tears as you are wounded by his words. âYou think because I take you out on a few dates, we kissed a little and I held that little hand of yours, that youâre anything special to me?â He shakes his head with a cruel chuckle, âIâve done that to every broad Iâve ever been with. Youâre not special. Never were anything more than a body to me.â
You puff out your chest like an animal trying to protect itself, âthen what about the nights we cuddled?â You demand. âWhat about our late night trips to McDonaldâs or 7/11? What about the nights you cried in my chest about your miseries and hardships, and I carded your hair and cradled you close to my body?â
âWhat about them!â He yells, the cracks in his confidents breaking. Those moments mean the world to him, and for him to now force you to use them against him has his blood running cold. âYeah, I let you see the softer bits of me. Who cares?â
âI do!â You wail. âBecause it made me think, for one second, that we could be something special! Something we earned and worked for together!â
âI think you forget,â he snarls, âI lived a fine life without you in it. We can go right fucking back the minute you started thinking this bullshit.â
You flinch at the harshness of his words. Itâs working. Sukuna feels it. The love you have for him dwindling, the connection being frayed and severed with every pass of his words-
âThen do it,â you whisper. âIf your life was so great loveless, then go back. But just know, Iâll never stop loving you. Ever. Youâll never have the peace of the freedom of heartbreak when it comes to me.â
With that, you take a step back, followed by another, but your eyes never leave his. Your bottom lip wobbles and you grab your coat over the back of his chair. He watches as you cover your mouth with your hand before dashing out, slamming the door behind you and leaving a trail of tears. His eyes are fixed on the door thatâs finally stopped shaking on its hinges from the slam, as if waiting for you to sweep back in and demand his love, demand him to care and want you back.
But it doesnât come. You donât come back.
He canât fight the urge to swipe everything off the counter with his arms in a fury, plates and cups flying off and shattering under the force. He pants like a voracious beast, angry and predatory, but heâs grounded as he steps on a shard of crystal from his momâs wine glass.
And now, rather than chase you down the street, begging for your forgiveness, he sits down, using his hands to pick up the bigger shards. Thereâs an unfamiliar trickling down his cheek of hot tears, one splatters to the floor, and thatâs it. Sukuna, with the monster he worked so hard to keep at bay, ruins another paradise in his life.
He cries alone.
All alone.
#HEE HEE#sukuna#sukuna angst#sukuna x reader#sukuna x reader angst#sukuna x gn!reader#sukuna imagine#sukuna jjk#sukuna ryomen#sukuna ryomen angst#sukuna ryomen x reader#sukuna ryomen x reader angst#sukuna ryomen x gn!reader#sukuna ryomen imagine#sukuna ryomen jjk#jjk#jjk angst#jjk x reader#jjk x reader angst#jjk imagine#jjk x gender neutral reader#jjk x gn!reader#jjk x y/n#jjk x you#jjk x yn
1K notes
¡
View notes
Text
Sirius Black x Reader
This came to me in a dream and I had to write it down! I've never posted any of my own works anywhere, but figured it's a short little one-shot that I may as well put out there even if no one ever reads it! If I feel inspired I might turn this into a proper fic, but idk yet.
Pairing: Sirius Black x Female!Reader (No use of Y/N)
A/N: set at Hogwarts, fake dating trope
Warnings: Swearing, Sirius isn't gay (even though Wolfstar is obviously canon lol)
Word count: 1401
*****
Barely catching her breath enough to mutter the password, the Gryffindor girl rushed into the common room, all windswept hair, flushed cheeks and wide eyes. She spotted the Marauders all lounging by the fire (except Peter - he was always off snogging Dorcus in a closet these days) and made a beeline straight for them. Remus was squashed awkwardly in an armchair, a book open against his long legs where they were draped over one arm and his back resting against the other. James was sitting up on one end of the adjacent couch, his transfiguration homework in his lap, with Sirius sprawled at the other end, legs stretched out in front of him, head tipped back and eyes closed, listening to the music emanating from the record player nearby.
She felt a twinge of regret when the cosy atmosphere broke as she stormed over, her gaze flicking over each of them before settling on Sirius, who had cracked an eye open to look at her, now standing on the carpet in front of the fire.
âBlack, I need you to be my boyfriend.â
James and Remus both snapped their heads up at that, and Siriusâ eyebrows rose. âExcuse me?â
âLucas Davis just asked me out again!â The three boys in front of her seemed to let out a simultaneous groan. They were almost as sick as she was of Davis, the irritating Gryffindor two years above them who had been hellbent on wooing her for almost four months now. Unlike James, who had been smitten with Lily since they were eleven and asked her out at least once a week, Davis was aggressive - cornering her in half-empty hallways only to speak over her, invading her personal space whenever he got the chance, and making creepy sexual innuendos anytime a teacher was out of ear-shot. At this point it didnât even seem to be about her. He just liked the chase and enjoyed making girls squirm. Even girls who hated his guts.
âJust tell him to piss offâ, James suggested with a shrug
âOh jeez, thanks James! Why didnât I think of that?â She rolled her eyes, âIâve told him to piss off a hundred times, in a hundred different ways! But heâs relentless- convinced Iâm playing âhard to getâ or some bullshit like that. The only thing I think would actually get the misogynistic bastard to leave me alone is if he thinks Iâm already seeing someone. So,â she said, turning again to Sirius, âcan you just pretend to be my boyfriend, Black?â
âWhy me? Ask Remus - you two already spend all your time together, surely dating isnât that much of a stretch!â She shook her head impatiently, âHeâs gayer than Bowie and everyone knows it!â. The boy in question huffed a laugh, âCheers, love.â She ignored him.
âGet James to do it then!â Sirius exclaimed, and the messy-haired boy next to him opened his mouth, sitting up straighter. He probably would do it, she thought, because he would do just about anything for his friends. The noble idiot. Â âOh please, you think anyone would believe that this lovesick fool has moved on from Lily?â She retorted, making a vague gesture towards James, who just grinned ruefully and relaxed back into his seat, nodding his head in agreement.
âAnd you think anyone would believe we are a couple?â She paused for a second, unsure of how to answer. Although she and Sirius had always been⌠sort of⌠friends, it was largely only because of her friendship with the other Marauders - mainly studying with Remus and playing quidditch with James. While they inevitably spent a lot of time together due to their mutual friends, it was true that they were at each otherâs throats more often than not, she supposed. Remus was complaining just last week about their constant bickering and their incessant need to outcompete each other in every little thing.Â
She was saved from answering by James. âActually, a Ravenclaw in our charms class - you know, Macmillan? - asked me if you two were dating a couple of weeks ago.âÂ
They both turned to look at him, shocked, and he just shrugged, âhe said he wanted to ask you to Hogsmeade but wanted to make sure nothing was going on between you and Siriusâ. Before she could unscramble her thoughts enough to answer, Remus piped up from his armchair. âA girl in the year below asked me something similar recently. Thought she might have a shot with Sirius, but wasnât sure. She said something about you two having âchemistryâ at that party after the last quidditch match.â She fought the blush that spread across her cheeks at the memory. Theyâd thrashed Slytherin last month and sheâd gotten pretty drunk at the party in Gryffindor tower afterwards. She always got a bit flirty when she drank, and Sirius was a shameless flirt even when he was stone cold sober. Theyâd traded a few harmless remarks early in the night, and later, though she couldnât really remember how it happened, she ended up dancing to some ABBA songs with her back pressed against Sirius' chest, his arms around her waist and his hot breath on her neck. It hadnât led anywhere - in fact she had been pretending it never happened - but she still felt a burning pit in her stomach whenever she thought about the way he had felt pressed against her, or the way he had grinned and licked his lips when she turned around and they danced chest to chest.
She shook herself slightly and forced herself to look at Sirius, who was frowning at Remus. âPlus,â she said bitingly, âyouâve established a pretty solid reputation for fucking anything that movesâ. Sirius scowled at her before roughly shoving himself up from the couch and strolling past her to the record player that was now sitting idle, the last track having finished. She watched his tense shoulders as he carefully selected a new record and switched them over. She softened her tone, âIâm sure Davis will move on and start pestering some other poor girl before long. I just need you to play the overprotective boyfriend role until he backs off.â She shared a glance with Remus and James when he still didnât respond. âPlease,â she finally relented. When Black still didnât answer, now decidedly fiddling with the tuning knobs on the record player, she sighed. Sheâd have to find another way to deter Davis and itâd have to be soon - she didnât know how many more times she could hear his sleazy âhiya sweetheartâ, before sheâd resort to hexing him. And that would probably just make him re-double his efforts.
She barely noted the sound of the gryffindor portrait opening to let someone into the common room, but then- âThere ya are sweetheart! Bin lookinâ all over for ya!â She gritted her teeth, turning around to see Lucas Davis stalking towards her, that stupid fucking smirk on his face. âCanât think why, given that you saw me an hour ago and I told you to âleave me the fuck aloneââ, she snapped. She could see both Remus and James tense in her peripherals, probably preparing to tell Davis to âfuck offâ themselves, but Sirius remained silent behind her. Davis either didnât notice the two boys glaring at him, or didnât care, and he only smiled wider, âaw come on princess, donâ be like that!â He whined, âI think you just need-âÂ
But she never found out what he thought she needed, as Sirius suddenly stepped up to her side, casually slung an arm around her shoulder and drawled, âYou heard my girl, fuck off and leave her alone.â Davis visibly recoiled, and she might have laughed at his shocked expression had she not been entirely preoccupied by Sirius' comforting warmth as he leant against her. âYour girl?â He sputtered.Â
âMy girl.â Sirius repeated, and she could hear the mocking smile in his voice, âGirlfriend, paramour, lover, whatever. The point is: fuck. off.â Even Remus seemed to be hiding a grin as Davis stood there, dumbstruck, his eyes darting between her and Sirius as though stupefied. She relaxed into Sirius embrace and intertwined her fingers with his where they hung over her shoulder. âBye Davisâ, she crooned, with a smug smile. He seemed to struggle for another moment before turning on his heel and striding out the door without another word.
#marauders#sirius black#harry potter#remus lupin#james potter#female!reader#gryffindor#gryffindor!reader#fake dating#sirius black x reader#one shot#drabble#xreader#marauders era
142 notes
¡
View notes
Text
goddess | elle greenaway x famous!reader
content warning: unlabeled sexuality, SA, douchy men, self-deprecating thoughts, soft elle, google translate spanish, laufey
divider by @enchanthings
It always goes like this
Could have predicted it
Iâm so naive to think you loved me for me
It was almost humiliating how many times youâd been in this position. Heels were abandoned at the door, makeup streaked down your face, and your heart felt too heavy to even make it to your own bedroom.
You threw yourself on your couch, dragging a blanket over yourself and taking your phone out apprehensively. Through your tears, you felt the hesitation of dialing that number.
The number you knew through and through.
You knew it by heart.
âShe doesnât want to hear from you,â that little devil whispered into your ear. âSheâs so sick and tired of you and your bullshit.â
A whimper escaped your lips. You wanted to throw your phone and let it shatter on impact. But you never did.
Instead you clutched it tighter and shoved yourself deeper into the cushions of your couch, the memories of that night resurfacing.
Kissed as I ran off stage
Too old to play this game
Guess youâre still growing up at thirty
You met him on a quiet Sunday morning. You were at your favorite cafe and there he was, approaching you. Calling you beautiful, unlike any other girl youâve met.
But most of all. He didnât recognize you.
You detested dating fans. You already got your heart broken there before. You swore off of that.
He showered you with so much affection, you completely missed the signs.
Red flags always seemed normal under your rose-tinted view of the world.
Were you surprised by me
When you took me home?
When the glamour wore off
Reduced to skin and bone
You should have known it was all a lie.
You should have known he was just like all the other
You donât know how long you sat there, wallowing in self-pity, but the sound of your phone ringing took you out of it for just a moment.
You pulled it away from where it was resting under the couch pillow and your eyes widened at the name.
Elle <3
Once again, you hesitated, your thumb hovering over the green button. You finally picked it up on the third ring.
âEllie, hi!â You cringed at the way your voice nearly immediately cracked as you tried to feign your usual chipper mood.
âHey lovely.â Her voice sounded so comforting. Even with just two words, you felt a twinge of warmth attempt to spread through your chest. âYou okay?â
You cleared your throat. âYeah, what makes you ask?â
âYou sound like youâve been crying. And itâs nearly midnight in LA, you arenât usually this chipper this late unless youâre faking it.â
A sigh escaped you. You never could lie to her.
âYouâve always been so observant.â Your voice dropped the octave now that the facade faded.
âI hope so,â she chuckled lightly. âItâs kind of my job. Do you want to talk about it?â
âShe doesnât mean it. Sheâs just being nice.â
âI donât want to bore you with the details.â
She hummed in disapproval. âYou know I always want the details from mi estrella.â
A sad smile slid on your face at the nickname given to you in your childhood; coined after you had gotten the solo in the choir concert.
âSuper star by day, best friend by night,â 10-year-old Elle had quipped.
You huffed out a small laugh before it all fell away as you recounted your date that night.
âYou remember Trevor right? Met him at that coffee shop on Melrose Avenue?â
You heard a pause on her end before she spoke again, her voice softer. âI do.â
âWellâŚI had a date with him tonight. Fourth one.â
âOh.â
âYeah. Oh.â
His lips pressed harshly into yours and his hands skimmed over your body as you struggled to keep up.
âI invited him to see me at a concert. My final one on my tour.â
I canât even tell
Who you want to know
âTrev,â you had tried to laugh. âSlow down.â
Your words fell upon deaf ears as he kissed down to your jaw and began attacking at your neck.
âI umâŚI thought it was a good idea to invite him backstage when it was overâŚtalk to him for a bit before I had to go out again.â
Elle listened as your tone got darker and darker, reliving your own fresh memories. She heard every bout of emotion in your voice. The pain that shone through from a broken heart.
He began lifting your skirt. You grew dizzy with nausea the more he continued.
âThis isnât right,â a tiny voice screamed at you.
âTrevâTrevor, please stop.â
Your hands found his chest, steadying yourself on it before pushing him away. âI said stop!â
ây/nâŚâ Elleâs voice was a whisper now.
âI-I told him I didnât want that. That I didnât think we were there yet. He didnât really like thatâŚâ
Iâm a goddess on stage
Human when weâre alone
âWhat do you mean weâre not there yet,â he scoffed. âIâve been waiting for basically two months for you to be ready.â
He moved in close again, placing a hand on your waist. âIâm so tired of waiting. Iâve listened to your stories, your music. Hell I even talked to that she-devil of a friend of yours, Bella.â
You couldnât decide whether or not to feel disgusted or betrayed. âItâs ElleâŚYou mean you didnât want any of that?â
âI wanted you, babyâŚisnât that enough.â
You cried freely now into the phone and Elle listened quietly, her own heart breaking for you.
âYouâd be proud of me Ellie,â you sniffed. âI stood my ground. Told him no.â
âYeah?â
You nodded, regardless if sheâd see it or not. âYeah⌠He didnât really like it though. I had to call security to escort him out.â
âDid he put his hands on you,â she asked.
You bit your lip, the line going quiet for just a moment before you spoke again. âDo you think I can visit you? Just for a week or so?â
She frowned at the sudden change in topic.
âOf course you can, lovely.â
That next day moved so painstakingly slow for Elle. It was a paperwork day which meant she got to sit around anxiously as she waited for another call from you.
You had already called twice. Once to tell her you were leaving your apartment, twice to tell her your plane was about to depart from LA.
Hours has passed and now she awaited your call telling her you were at the airport waiting.
âAlright,â Derek quipped, rocking back in his chair. âWhatâs up with you today?â
Elle looked over at the man, lifting an eyebrow at him. âWhat do you mean?â
âYouâve been staring at your phone all day,â Spencer claimed, not looking up from his paperwork.
Elleâs attention snapped between the two men before finally settling on Morgan. âSo?â
Derek grinned. âSoâŚ? You hate the phone Elle, now you look like youâre waiting for it to come to life in front of your eyes.â
The girl scoffed out a laugh, shaking her head.
âYou know what I think it it,â Derek continued. âI think youâve got Mr. Mystery youâre waiting on.â
Her smile halted for just a second at his words. She twirling the pen in between her fingers once then twice. âYouâre delusional Morgan.â
Almost right on cue, her phone rang and Derek let out a laugh seeing the usually preserved woman scramble for it.
âAgent Greenaway.â
âSo professional,â you mused, a sly grin sliding on your lips.
A smile eased onto her expression as she turned away from Morganâs prying eyes. âHola amorcito. ÂżCĂłmo estuvo tu vuelo?â
âIt was good, I slept the whole way here.â
âEso es bueno. Lo necesita.â
âRude,â you fake gasped. âAre you calling me grouchy?â
âSabes lo que quise decir y/n.â
Morgan and Reid looked at each other as they listened to Elleâs end of the conversation, completely clueless as to what you were saying.
âEstarĂŠ allĂ en veinte. Estar segura. Te amo.â
Reid furrowed his brows curiously. He might not have been a whiz in Spanish, but he definitely caught those last words.
âAlright boys, you better behave.â
Spencer frowned. âWhere are you going?â
âWouldnât you like to know.â
The two of you had spent the rest of the day together.
You didnât want to go out, so she took you straight to your apartment and there you had the time of your life. You two binged movies, played board games, and now you were cooking together.
It was pure bliss and you couldnât as for more.
âI missed this,â Elle mused.
You sat perched on the counter, your head laid comfortably on the cabinet behind you and you passed ingredients to the cooking woman.
âCooking,â you asked with a giggle.
She looked over at you with a laugh. âPass me the oregano would you. And no I donât mean cooking. I mean being with you. Phone calls donât feel like enough anymore.â
You twisted your body around as you shuffled through her spice cabinet. âYeah,â you mused. âHearing your voice is definitely what keeps me sane though.â
Elleâs heart stuttered at those words. The cooking spoon in her hand slowed it stirring and she looked up at you.
âI canât find the oregano,â you mumbled, your attention now fully on the cabinet.
ââŚitâs on the second shelf,â she cleared her throat, pointing up to where it should be.
âIâm looking on the second shelf,â you whined playfully.
âHere,â she moved away from the hot stove and in front of you, leaving over your head to reach it. âIt was rightâŚthere.â
She didnât even realize what position she had put herself in until it was much too late. Either one of your thighs laid beside her hips. You looked down at her and you could feel her breath on you. You could smell her addicting perfume that you found yourself missing every time you two were apart.
It was like an invisible magnet between you two, beckoning the both of you closer and closer. So close that you felt her lips brush against yours.
It was like an epiphany to you. Everything clicked in your head.
The pauses over the phone.
The nicknames.
Hiding your phone calls from her team.
But just as the fireworks began to rise, they sizzled out before ever going off.
She pulled away, clearing her throat awkwardly.
âYouâre so delusional,â that ugly voice hissed to you. âSheâs seen the real you. The ugly you. Why would she want that?â
You swallowed hard and blinked away your tears. âElle.â
She didnât look over to you. Just focused on finishing the meal. âYeah?â
You released a dying sigh. âDo youâŚdo you think Iâm unlovable?â
She had never looked up so fast. You would have thought the spoon burned her from how quickly she dropped it.
âWhat?â
You felt like the question was a plot for attention, but it wasnât. It was probably one of the most genuine questions you asked in a long time.
âI- never mind. Iâm sorry.â
Elle looked at you as if you grew a second head right in front of her. ây/n,â she moved back to that same position she had just run from. Except this time, her hands fell to your cheeks, caressing them oh-so gently. âHow could you ask that question?â
You frowned. âHow could I not?â It came out as a whisper. A moment of pure vulnerability. The first of its kind since that phone call last night.
âIâm not that impossibly perfect, beautiful super star they all expect me to be. Iâm justâŚme. No one wants that.â
Elle shook her head, eyes scanning all over your face before finally settling on your eyes once more. âI want that.â
She felt you freeze under her grasp, but she continued on. âEvery single failed date and false expectation was never your fault. You areâŚso incredibly talented, beautiful, and utterly amazing. In more ways than people give you credit for. If all these other people canât love you the way I do, for you, then they donât deserve you.â
Your breath stopped in your chest. Stuck. Unable to move in or out. âYou love me? Or do you love me?â
You put that emphasis on your final words. There was no other way it could have been interpreted other than
ây/n, I am so utterly in love with you. I have been for a long time.â
Your hands found her wrists where you stabled yourself onto her. A smile broke free from your shocked expression. With a broken laugh, you surged forward, pressing your lips onto herâs in a kiss.
âI love you too.â
Translations:
âhi lovely how was your flight.â
âThatâs good, you needed itâ
âYou know what I mean y/nâ
âIâll be there in twenty. Stay safe. I love you.â
@mackannkees
AN: I canât believe I wrote that all in one night. Itâs officially 3am as of posting, Iâm not expecting this to get much attention, this was more self-indulgence if anything. I hope u guys like it tho
#Spotify#criminal minds#elle greenaway#elle greenaway x reader#greenaway x reader#elle#greenaway#lesbians#lgbtq#pansexual#bisexual#queer#wlw#x reader#elle greenaway criminal minds#spencer reid#derek morgan#criminal minds x reader#criminal minds x you#criminal minds elle
173 notes
¡
View notes
Text
By Chance
Warnings: Angst. Fluff.
Word Count: 6.2k+
Requested by @louxbloom
Taglist : @natashamaximoff-69 @canvascoloredin @wizardofstories @louxbloom @wandanats-goodgirl @the-ox-fan20 @youdontknowwhotfiam
18+ MINORS DNI
The relationship between Wanda and Vision was complicated. It seemed like they were the perfect couple, but whenever Vision had a chance to disappear, claiming it was work related. Wanda was always left alone in the house, playing with the ring on her finger as she looked out the window.
"You need to end it Wanda." Nat told her as the two met up for coffee. "It's been forever since we have hung out and you're moping around about Vision."
"I am not moping." Wanda told her before she released a shaky breath. "What am I doing wrong Nat? We are engaged to be married. Everytime I bring up a date, he shoots it down."
"End it Wanda." Nat told her.
"I love him Nat." Wanda whispered. "I don't want to give up on something that might work in the end."
"Might work," Nat emphasized. "He clearly doesn't care about you Wanda, otherwise he would be here."
Wanda knew that she was right, she was holding onto something that was bound to fail. So she decided to take her friend's advice, she started to pack her things and pack her car as Vision was at work.
"What's for dinner?" He asked as he walked inside, taking off his tie as he spotted Wanda sitting on the sofa. "Did you cook anything?" He asked her as she shook her head.
"I didn't have it in me." She told him. "Not anymore."
"What's going on?" He asked her as he moved closer, his eyes soon landing on the engagement ring on the table.
"It's over." She told him. "I am sick of sitting at home, waiting for a fiancè who is never here."
"This is ridiculous Wanda." He told her. "I am trying to get the money saved for our wedding."
"Don't bullshit me." She told him as she stood up. "You never want to organise the wedding, you keep denying any of the dates I suggest."
"Wanda, you're reading too deep into this." He scoffed as she shook her head.
"Who is she?" She asked him. "I want a name and I want to know why?"
"That's ridiculous." He laughed as she shook her head. "You are making things up in your mind Wanda, did you have one of those dreams again."
"No!" She yelled at him.
"Maybe we can order from that Thai place you like." He tried to distract her.
"Stop changing the subject." She told him. "I am leaving and we are done." As she went to leave he grabbed her arm.
"No one will love you Wanda." He growled as she got herself free from him, tears in her eyes.
"I will." She told him. "I will love myself." She wiped her eyes. "I don't need you to love me."
"You'll regret this Wanda." He yelled after her as she left the house. It was rented by the company that Vision worked for since they had left her family back in New York. Getting in her car and starting the journey back to New York.
"Wanda?" Pietro was shocked to see his twin standing outside his door.
"I need somewhere to stay and I couldn't go to Nat." She whispered as he just opened his arms for her.
"It's ok, you're always welcome here." He told her. As the days went by, Wanda had managed to get her old job back, seeing all of her old work friends again. She was happy, happier than she has been since she moved with Vision.
"I want to kill him." Pietro growled as Wanda had explained everything that had gone down with Vision, all to the last word he said to her. "I need to kill him." He growled as Wanda shook her head no.
"I don't want to worry about him anymore." She told him. "I want to live the life I lost the moment we moved to Westview."
And she did just that, months went by as she started to recognise the person in her reflection. The woman she used to be before her life revolved around him.
"Shit." A voice sounded, breaking her from her daze.
"I am so sorry." She rambled as she tried to dry their shirt. "I am so sorry. Let me buy you a new shirt."
"It's ok." They smiled at her. "I have a spare at the office."
"I am so sorry. I wasn't watching where I was going." She told them as they smiled at her.
"It's fine, really." They told her once again. "Look, I would really love to stay here and listen to your cute rambles but I have a meeting. It's extremely important but here is my card." They handed her their card. "Maybe give me a call and I would love to hear your rambles over a date." They waited for a name.
"Wanda." She told them.
"Well, I will wait for your call." They kissed her cheek before walking away as she watched them, a deep blush coating her cheeks. Looking at the card once they were no longer in her sight. She noticed the name and where they worked.
Y/N Y/L/N
CFO
Stark Industries
She was shocked to say the least, the person she had just bumped into, beat Vision at the promotion. She remembered him returning home a few weeks before they were relocated.
Vision slammed the apartment door shut as he walked in, loosening his tie as he spotted Wanda standing at the stove.
"Are you ok Vis?" She asked him as he groaned.
"Do I look ok?" He asked her bluntly. "That promotion that I have been working towards, putting in all of the extra hours and taking on a bigger workload went to someone from outside of the company!" He grabbed a beer from the fridge. "I fucking worked for Mr Stark since I left college, worked my way up through the ranks and now some good for nothing nobody has the job."
"I'm sure it may be temporary." Wanda tried as Vision slammed the bottle down before he approached her, gripping her jaw hard.
"Are you fucking stupid?" He growled as she tried to get free from his grip. "It's not fucking temporary you stupid bitch."
She had to cover the bruises for weeks after that night, seeing a different side to Vision that she feared.
She pondered for a couple of weeks before she decided to phone the number on the phone.
"Y/N Y/L/N, how may I help?" They answered professionally.
"Hi, it's Wanda." She spoke nervously as she played with the tassel on her hoodie. "The shirt stain."
"That was art." They told her excitedly. "I wore it with pride." She giggled at their playfulness. "How have you been?"
"I have been good." She told them as she sat on her bed. "Just debating on whether I should call you."
"Well, I am glad you did." They told her. "So, how does coffee sound?"
"When?" She questioned.
"Tomorrow at 1pm?" They asked her. "There's this new place that's just opened near Central Park."
"That sounds perfect." Wanda smiled as she thought about the person who has been on her mind.
"I'll see you tomorrow Wanda." They both bid their goodbyes as they hung up. Pietro stood in the doorway as she lay back, a smile on his face at seeing her happy.
"Do you want to tell me who that was?" He questioned as she shook her head.
The next morning came around, Vision hated the idea of being back in New York, but he was needed for a meeting with none other than the company CFO.
"So the Westview branch is losing profit." Y/N questioned as they looked at the presentation that Vision had planned out.
"I guess you can say that." He mumbled.
"The records show that." Y/N told him. "What's your plan to get things level for the next twelve months?"
"I guess we can make some cutbacks." He tried as Y/N looked over the files they had.
"That will help to an extent but we need a long term solution." They told him. "Look at the retiring employees, maybe early retirement since it is the veterans who earn more than the younger ones you have just hired."
"But they're better at the job, more proficient." He tried as Y/N shook their head.
"Work with the new employees, have Viv help you out with it, and start giving out early retirements." They told him, glancing at their watch. "Head back and put the plan into motion, I'll talk with Ms Potts about this situation."
"What will happen if we can't get a level of profit?" He asked as Y/N put the folders away.
"We will have no choice but to close the Westview branch." They told him, gesturing for him to leave before they started to get ready to meet Wanda.
Vision was shocked to see Wanda sat at an outside table at Loki's, a coffee in her hand as she scrolled through her social media.
"Wanda, hi." He greeted her, causing her to look up in his direction, a forced smile on her lips.
"Vision." She looked around before looking at him once more. "What are you doing here?" She asked him.
"I had a meeting at HQ." He told her. "So you live here again? In New York?"
"Yes." She spoke bluntly, wanting him to leave her.
"Wanda." Y/N's voice broke her and Vision from their conversation. "Vision?"
"Y/N, do you know Wanda?" He asked with a smirk as Wanda stood abruptly.
"Let's get that coffee." She told them as she led them inside the cafè, not sparing Vision a second glance. He just watched as the two linked arms as they waited at the counter.
"How is it that you know Vision?" Y/N asked Wanda as the two walked over to an empty table with their drinks.
"Well, it's complicated." She told them as they gave her a smile.
"I have got time." They told her as she smiled at them.
"He is my ex fiancè." She told them as they nodded. "When he got transferred to Westview, I went with him. Blindly."
"I think it wasn't a nice experience." They stated as they observed her.
"No." She answered. "I guess some of the people who I had met there were nice but my career was here and the schools in Westview were small, so there weren't any jobs for me. I was a stay at home fiancè and I hated it."
"I guess he didn't take it well." Y/N pointed out. "Because he looked like he could kill me for a whole other reason."
"Yeah, he hated you before we moved." Wanda told them with a smirk. "You got the job he had been working towards and he hated it."
"Well, now I am happier." They smiled as they sat back. "I have met a beautiful woman, by chance I might add, and I have learnt why one of my employees hates me."
"He was always a power hungry man." Wanda told them.
"You sound like you know from experience." They spoke as their gaze softened. "Did he ever hurt you?" They asked her as she looked at her watch.
"I have to go." She told them.
"I'm sorry if I overstepped and made you uncomfortable." They apologised.
"It's not that." She whispered as she squeezed her eyes closed. "I barely know you and you want to know more about a relationship I had with an employee"
"Well, get to know me. Ask me anything." They told her with a smile.
"What is your favourite colour?" She asked them.
"It used to be blue, but now I'm thinking green." They smirked as Wanda chuckled.
"You keep complimenting me." She stated as Y/N nodded with a wide smile.
"And I would keep complimenting you everyday that I see you." They told her as she smiled.
"I'd like that." She smiled, that was something Vision had never done since the first year of them dating.
That was the start of Wanda's happiness again, both Y/N and Wanda had multiple dates but Y/N respected her boundaries. Waiting for her to be the one to make the next move. So as they walked together to her brother's apartment, their coat wrapped around her shoulders to protect her from the bitter ice in the winter air.
"Thank you for tonight." She whispered as they stood before the building.
"Thank you for accompanying me." They smiled as they brushed her hair from her face, she closed her eyes as a sigh left her lips at the gentle touch.
"I uh, what is the purpose of these dates for you?" Wanda asked them, her eyes boring into their own. "It's always just us, and the dates are a little too romantic to be just friends."
"I want to be more than friends." They answered honestly. "But I don't want to push anything, I am willing to wait for you Wanda."
"Don't wait for me." She whispered as her hand found theirs, holding it as she entwined their fingers. "I don't want to wait either."
"So?" They asked her, confused by her words.
"Kiss me?" She whispered as they smiled, their free hand moving to cup her cheek. Leaning in slowly until their lips met in a tender kiss, Wanda soon gripped their shirt as she pulled them closer, deepening the kiss before they pulled away.
"I will see you soon." They whispered as they opened their eyes.
"Kiss me again?" She asked as they complied, giving her a soft kiss before pulling away.
"If I keep kissing you, I won't be able to stop." They whispered as she pouted.
"Don't stop." She replied as they shook their head as their smile widened.
"I have to." They told her. "Your brother is most likely home and I would love to take you on more dates and ask you a very important question first."
"Then ask me." She told them as they chuckled lightly.
"Not right now." They caressed her cheek. "I want it to be special. Memorable, like every moment spent with you."
"Go." She told them breathlessly. "Now, or I will go against everything you have just said and take you upstairs."
"I'll see you soon dear." They kissed her forehead before watching her disappear through the doors before walking home themselves.
"How was it?" Pietro asked as Wanda walked inside, a fuzzy smile on her face.
"It was perfect." She told him as she sat beside him on the sofa. "They are perfect."
"When do I get to meet them?" He asked her as she giggled. "You have been on like a million dates, they should have met the family by now."
"Soon." She told him, he just smiled as he pulled her in for a hug.
"It's nice to see that smile on your face again." He told her. "Haven't seen that smile since we were kids."
On the next date, Y/N had decided to cook for Wanda in their apartment. They had sent her their address as they had managed to find a recipe for chicken paprikash.
"Hey." They smiled as they answered the door, receiving a kiss in return.
"Kiss the chef." Wanda smirked as she pointed at the apron.
"It was a joke gift from my assistant." They helped her take off her coat as she looked at the open plan luxury apartment.
"This is a nice place." She whispered as they hung up her coat. Smiling at her as she wandered over to the window.
"I like it here." They told her. "It's a change from my old apartment in Algonquin."
"Algonquin?" She questioned as they shrugged.
"It was home. My parents still live there, and never wanted to move." They told her as they went to stir the food on the stove.
"Is that?" She asked as she approached them.
"It is." They confirmed. "I found a recipe online during a meeting on Monday and I had to try and cook it for you." She listened as they rambled. "I remember you saying it was your favourite dish that your mom used to make."
"Thank you." She whispered.
"Thank me after you don't die of food poisoning." They told her as their eyes met hers. Wanda had felt that in that moment, the entire world had stopped moving, with the intensity they gazed at her.
"Do you want me to help with anything?" She asked as she straightened out her jumper.
"Maybe grab whatever drink you want from the rack." They told her as they started to get the bowls out, and the garlic bread from the oven.
"My brother wants to meet you." She told them as she sat opposite them.
"Really? Would I be getting the talk?" They questioned with a joke.
"Most definitely." She chuckled. "With Vision, he thought that he was a good guy, that he wouldn't hurt me."
"But he did." They stated. "In more than one way." They started to clear the plates before taking Wanda's hand and helping her stand. "Just know that, if you agree to be mine, I will protect your heart with my life. I will do everything in my power to keep that smile on your face and that sparkle in your eye."
"Yes." She whispered as she subconsciously stepped closer to them. "I want to be yours." Her hands danced along the front of their shirt as they held her hip with one hand and the other caressing her cheek. The tenderness that they had shown her made her realise that she would always be safe when she was in their arms. So they spent that night, getting to know each other deeply, their clothes strewn across the bedroom floor as Y/N kissed her passionately. Showing her all of the things she never knew she could feel.
She woke the next morning, just covered by the sheet as flashes of the night before flashed through her mind. She could smell pancakes and hear Y/N's voice as they spoke on the phone.
"Westview will have to be closed." They spoke. "We have no other option. There isn't any way we can save that branch." They sighed as they flipped the pancakes. "Offer them a transfer or redundancy. It's the only choice we have." They smiled as they spotted Wanda walk in with the shirt that she stripped from them the night before. "I'll be back on Monday and we can discuss it more. Good day Mr Smith."
"Was that?" Wanda questioned as she took a seat as Y/N hung up.
"It was Vision." They told her. "Tell me if this is too weird."
"It's weird hearing his name but I really like you." She stood up and walked towards them as they turned off the stove. "So much and I don't want this to end." She stood nose to nose with them as she bit her lip. "You have made me feel alive, more alive than I have been since the day I was born."
"Let's eat." They told her, lifting her onto the surface before she could say otherwise, kissing her with urgency before they took off the shirt. "You are the most beautiful woman I have ever seen." They whispered as they looked in her eyes. "Like you were painted by Da Vinci himself."
Wanda pulled them back into a hungry kiss, moaning as their tongue pushed past her lips, devouring her as much as they could. The breakfast soon became cold and forgotten about as they had their head between Wanda's thighs, bringing forth another mind blowing orgasm.
Wanda was nervous about Pietro meeting Y/N, cooking a simple meal as she wore Y/N's shirt with her jeans, setting the table and making sure the apartment seemed nice.
"The apartment is fine Wanda." Pietro told her as he leaned on the wall, an amused smirk on his face.
"This is shabby compared to their's P." She told him.
"If they really like you Wanda, they wouldn't care about the apartment." He told her just as the doorbell rang. Moments later, Pietro let them in, handing him a case of premium beer and a bouquet of flowers for Wanda.
"Hi, you must be Pietro." They held out their hand for him to shake.
"I am, and I have heard a lot about you." He told them with a smirk. "So, if you hurt her, I will find out and you won't like it when I do."
"I don't plan on ever hurting her." They told him honestly.
"Good." He smirked as Wanda came just in time.
"Dinner is ready." She told them as she grabbed Y/N's hand and led them to the table. They shared small conversations, Y/N heard stories from when the twins were young.
"So." Pietro questioned as Wanda left the table. "What are your intentions with my sister?"
"I just want to be there for, however she would let me." They told him honestly. "I want to keep that smile on her face and show her that she will be loved and treated like the queen she was born to be."
"Just don't hurt her, her ex fiancè did and I found her on my doorstep, crying." He told them as they nodded.
"I intend to look after her for as long as she will have me." They reassured him.
"Good." He spoke bluntly before Wanda returned with the desert.
"I kind of ruined the cake so ice cream it is." She smiled shyly as Pietro laughed and Y/N smiled endearingly at her.
"That's perfect." They smiled as she sat down beside them.
Since meeting Pietro, everything seemed to be going fine, what Wanda hadn't thought would happen would be Vision returning to New York.
"You will be manning the 11th floor." Y/N told him as he scoffed.
"I have just come from running a branch and now you expect me to take a demotion?" He asked them as they sighed.
"Look, Mr Smith, you are my employee. It was written in the new contract that you had signed when you accepted the transfer over the redundancy." Y/N told him tiredly.
"Can I take the redundancy now?" He questioned as Y/N chuckled lightly.
"You did go to University, no?" They questioned. "Because if you did, you would have understood the first question, and your inability to read over a contract is making me question your position at this company as a whole. Who knows what deals you have screwed us over with."
"Y/N." He tried as Y/N glared at him.
"You will be manning 11th, and that is final. Do I make myself clear?" They asked him.
"Crystal." He muttered before he left Y/N's office. Every time he saw their face, he wanted to punch them.
Pepper walked to Y/N's office, letting herself in and closing the door behind her.
"What can I do for you Pepper?" They asked her politely as she sat in the chair opposite them.
"The company is hosting a charity gala this month, we have managed to rent out the ballroom at the usual spot." She told them. "We need the management for each floor department to be there, as well as yourself and I."
"When is it?" They asked her as they opened up their diary.
"It is on the 27th. You can bring a plus one if you want to bring your assistant again." She told them.
"I won't be bringing Carol." They told her. "I will be bringing my girlfriend." They smiled as Pepper made herself comfortable.
"Girlfriend? When did this happen?" She asked with a wide smile. They told her everything from the moment they met Wanda to now, especially with it nearing 8 months since they have been dating. "You sound like you're in love."
"I am." They told her. "I can't explain why I feel like this but she makes me want to be a better person. When I'm around her, it's easy, just being me and not CFO of Stark Industries." Y/N told her.
"You should tell her." She stated as Y/N shook their head.
"It's too soon." They told her.
"Love doesn't have a time frame." She told them. "And I can't wait to meet the lucky lady."
Y/N was a nervous wreck after that talk with Pepper, they were sitting on the sofa with Wanda as her favorite show was on. Her head on their shoulder as she held their hand.
"Are you ok?" She asked as she noticed their stiff posture. "You seem tense."
"I love you." They blurted out before removing themselves from the sofa. "I'm sorry, I never planned to say it like this. Tell you even." Wanda watched as they rambled, her heart beating rapidly. "I wanted to make the moment special. I just."
"Any moment spent with you is special." She told them as she stood before them, her finger placed upon their lips. "And I am falling for you too. I can't explain it because it happened fast and I have wanted to tell you for a while now. I love you Y/N." They pulled her in for a tender kiss, smiling against her lips as the kiss broke.
"Do you have any plans on the 27th?" They asked her.
"No. Why?" She questioned.
"The company is throwing the annual charity gala and I was wondering if you would be my date?" They asked her.
"I would love to." She told them before kissing them once more before pulling them onto the sofa. Little did they know that things from this moment would be more challenging.
The moment Vision saw the two walk in the room arm in arm, he was fast to get another drink. He hated seeing the person who got the job he wanted have his girl. It was when he spotted Y/N being dragged away to talk to a client, leaving Wanda alone at the bar.
"They just left you here?" He smirked as he approached her.
"Why are you here Vision?" She asked him.
"Do you know, their assistant is usually the one they bring here." He sneered as Wanda scoffed.
"Leave me alone." She told him as she tried to leave, before he gripped her arm.
"Do you really think they love you?" He taunted. "No one will love you Wanda, no one but me."
"You never really loved me." She told him. "You only cared about yourself."
"You're making a huge mistake." He spat at her.
"Please get your hands off my girlfriend." Y/N spoke up as they stood behind Vision.
"Is she really your girlfriend or is she keeping you warm for the next whore." He taunted as Y/N's hand removed Wanda from his grasp.
"You know, if we weren't at a business event, I would take you outside and kick your ass for thinking you could put your hands on a woman, let alone my girlfriend." They told him. "But right now, I can make your life a living hell. I can make sure you won't find another job in New York again. I have the power to do just that so I suggest you leave Wanda alone. You will not look at her. Talk to her or even touch her because if you do, I will make sure you won't be breathing the same air as her. Do I make myself clear?"
"Crystal." He snarled before walking away, Y/N was fast to check her arm.
"Are you ok?" They asked her, and she just kissed them passionately.
"That was hot." She whispered as Y/N laughed at her. "But yeah, I'm ok." The rest of the night went by swimmingly, Vision seemed to stay away from Wanda until he had an idea.
Pietro groaned when he saw Vision enter the bar, wanting to kick his ass. He crossed his arms as his sister's ex sat on the stool opposite him.
"Why are you here?" Pietro asked him bluntly.
"Can't I get a drink in this fine establishment?" Vision taunted as Pietro just got him a beer.
"Why are you here?" He asked again as Vision took a long sip.
"Y/N is hurting Wanda." He told him.
"What?" He questioned.
"I've seen it, they held her arm extremely hard earlier. It will most likely bruise and let's not forget about Carol." Vision fought back the smirk on his face.
"Carol?" Pietro questioned.
"Yeah, she's Y/N's assistant, extremely close. I have walked by their office and heard noises before." He told him. "You know, sex noises."
"So you're telling me that Y/N is hurting my sister and cheating on her." He stated as Vision nodded.
"That's exactly what I'm telling you." Vision finished his beer and put the money down before leaving an angry Pietro behind, feeling extremely triumphant about himself.
"I had fun tonight." Wanda told Y/N as they held hands, walking through the streets.
"So did I." They answered before pausing their steps, observing her bruising arm. "Does that hurt?" They asked her as she shook her head no. "This isn't the first time he has hurt you, is it?"
"No." She told them, barely above a whisper. "He wasn't always like that though, when we first got together he was sweet and gentle but then something changed in him as time went on." The two sat on a bench as Y/N wrapped their jacket around her shoulders. "He was overworking himself, forgetting dates and then he would try and buy my forgiveness with flowers and jewelry. Before we got engaged, I thought the man I fell in love with was coming back to me, and then after the engagement it got worse. The first time he hit me was when I never came home from work before him. I went out with my work friends so his dinner wasn't ready for him. He slapped me across the face."
"You don't have to talk about it if you don't want to." They assured her as she nodded.
"I know." She answered as she looked into their gentle eyes. "I just feel safe with you."
"You will always be safe with me." They told her, lips about to touch as they heard Pietro's angry voice.
"Pietro?" Wanda questioned as he threw a punch at Y/N's jaw.
"You make me sick." He growled as Y/N held their jaw.
"What is going on?" Wanda asked as Pietro threw another punch.
"They hurt you. They have been hurting you." He told her. "I know everything Wanda, the bruises on your arms. The sex with the assistant."
"What?" She whispered as Y/N looked at Pietro.
"I would never hurt Wanda." Y/N told him as they stood up. "I would never cheat on her either. That's just not who I am."
"What about the sex noises in the office?" He questioned as both Y/N and Wanda went beetroot. "And Carol wasn't at her desk."
"That would be us." Wanda admitted. "They send her on a long lunch while we have our time."
"But the bruises?" He questioned pointing to her arm.
"How do you know?" She asked him.
"Vision, he came by the bar just." He told her. "I'm sorry Y/N, when he said that you were hurting her and cheating on her I just went."
"I know." They nodded as they held their jaw. "I would have done the same had I been in your position."
"It doesn't excuse my behaviour." He told them.
"It's ok." They straightened up. "I will deal with Vision myself." They told the two of them. "I'll see you soon my dear." They kissed her cheek as they left her with Pietro.
"So, who gave you the bruises?" He asked her as they walked home together. She told him everything, from the first moment he first laid hands on her as Y/N spent all night at the office. Finding a way to get Vision out of New York.
"You wanted to see me?" Vision spoke as he entered the office, his eyes widening as he spotted Pepper sat in Y/N's chair.
"I have asked Pepper to be here because right now, it is taking everything in me to remain professional." They told him as they turned to face him. "After the bruises you left on my girlfriend's arm last night and trying to ruin my relationship with her by spreading lies to her brother has shown me that you no longer belong here." They told him. "So, I have a proposition for you, you can either take the transfer to our Dubai branch or you can tender your resignation. Effect of immediately"
"So which will it be?" Pepper questioned.
"Mr Stark won't stand for this." Vision spat at the two of them. "We are friends."
"When was the last time you and Mr Stark hung out?" Pepper questioned. "A college party that my husband no longer remembers. Besides, he saw how you treated Ms Maximoff last night, he saw it all and he wanted you fired, arrested too."
"This is just a whole misunderstanding." Vision laughed as both Pepper and Y/N remained serious.
"I'm afraid it is past the whole misunderstanding phase." Y/N told him. "You have hated seeing me with your ex fiancèe because you still think you have some moronic claim over her."
"I love her." He told them as Y/N chuckled.
"You don't love her." They told him. "You love the idea of having a stay at home wife who would cater to your every need. Someone to make you feel good whenever you desire in however way you want. That's not love, that's narcissistic misogyny." His shoulders deflated knowing he had lost this fight. "You have 24hrs to decide Mr Smith. If you are a moment late, I will start the process for assault charges."
Vision left the office with a huff as Pepper smiled up at Y/N.
"Are you ok?" She asked them.
"Yeah." They nodded. "I'll be even better when he is out of Wanda's life. Thank you for helping me."
"It's no problem, now go home and rest." She told them which they did, already finding Wanda in their apartment, preparing a dinner for when they finished.
"What are you doing here?" The two asked at the same time.
"I figured you would be hungry after work." She told them.
"Pepper sent me home since I was working on our problem all night." They told her.
"Did you sort it out?" She asked them.
"We will find out tomorrow at 9am." They told her. "Or he will be getting charged for assault, the amount of witnesses there was from the moment he punched me, twice."
"You wouldn't?" She smirked as they nodded, wrapping their arms around her waist.
"I would do anything for you Ms Maximoff." They told her, pressing a kiss to her forehead and holding her close.
The moment Vision had took the job in Dubai, Wanda felt as though she could breathe freely, live freely as she moved her things into Y/N's apartment.
"You can decorate the place however you want to." They told her as she shook her head.
"Maybe some pictures to decorate the walls and units maybe." She told them as she pulled out a polaroid camera, taking a picture of the two as Y/N kissed her cheek.
"I guess we will have some memories to make then." They told her. "Like maybe a holiday, next week in Scotland."
"What about work?" She asked them as they smiled at her.
"Already sorted." They told her with a cheeky smile. "I spoke with Natasha about putting a holiday for you and that this was a surprise." She kissed their lips fervently, her heart full as she realised that this was the life she had craved. A love so pure that she never had to question it, whether she deserved it or not.
The trip to Scotland felt like a dream for her, the stolen moments and kisses she would share with Y/N as they explored the country. It wasn't until they were standing in the fields, surrounding Edinburgh that she turned to find Y/N on one knee.
"What are you doing?" She asked them as they smiled at her.
"Wanda, meeting you by chance was the best moment in my life. But I never knew that at that moment I wanted to spend the rest of my life with you. Loving you how you deserved to be loved. Showing you how you should be treated and cared for, and I want to do that for the rest of my life because with each passing day, my love for you only grows. So will you do me the honour of becoming my wife?" They asked her as she only nodded with a shaky yes. Once the ring was on her finger, she pulled them in for a hard kiss. The two pulled away with smiles on their faces.
"I love you so much." She whispered as they pecked her lips once more.
"I love you so much more." They took her hand as they walked back to the hotel together. Ready to start on the adventure their future holds together.
#wanda maximoff x reader#wanda maximoff#marvel#elizabeth olsen#wanda x you#elizabeth olsen x reader#wanda x reader#wanda x y/n#wanda maximoff x you#natasha romanoff
370 notes
¡
View notes
Text
would you like to find out pt. 2 (diabolik lovers modern college au)
pairing: ayato sakamaki x yui komori (feat. kanato and laito)
summary: everything started with a reckless, "I wanna know how it feels like to date."
themes: mostly humor with mentions of nsfw
note: part 1 here
Ayato absentmindedly playing and picking on his food was a rare sight, and it irritated Kanato as it ruins his appetite first thing in the morning. He had been doing it since the whole blonde-dream-girl-he-met-at-a-party-run-off-from-him-the-next-day-after-they-had-sex fiasco. Of course, he endured his brothers teasing him to no end, saying how he got dumped for the first time after a one-night stand (because it was rare; like hello, Ayato Sakamaki, the IT boy of Ryoutei University, the infamous college basketball champion.) It wasn't until the jokes don't sound funny anymore and Ayato wasn't eating takoyaki that Kanato and Laito believed this girl must be some serious shit.
And Kanato, being the prick he is, decided to stab his bacon and eggs so loudly in the morning, uncaring if Laito was staring between his older brothers awkwardly. While the concern was there, Kanato can't help but get irritated at Ayato's constant wistful and hopeless romantic longing.
Ugh. Love and all the neuro-shit.
"U-Umm..." Laito started, feeling Kanato's patience slip away, "Ayato-kun, aren't you going to eat-"
"Let him starve himself over some girl who dumped him," Kanato cut in, the stabbing motions not ceasing anytime soon. How dare he anger him? If that's what he wants, then that's what he'll get.
But Ayato was stubborn. Laito gulped nervously at that.
Oh, no.
Kanato slammed his fists on the table. "Okay, what do you want? Just say anything because I am getting sick and tired of your endless moping."
Ayato sighed again, stopping from his usual ministrations. "You can't help me. You don't know her."
Kanato huffed. "Bullshit. We already saw her leave the day after, remember."
"But you don't know where to find her," Ayato countered to which Laito found himself agreeing with.
To be fair, they don't know anything about this mysterious Yui Komori girl. But if they were to have first impression guesses, the girl seemed the honest yet clueless type. She also has the good girl type, the obedient one who always follows her parents' bidding because she is good like that.
However, the girl attended the party in their house and spent that one night with Ayato. That new information doesn't match their impression. Nonetheless, this Yui Komori can quite be a breath of fresh air. After all, this would be the first time Ayato flirted with a girl from the university since all his exes came from different schools.
"So this Bitch-chan has the curiosity of a cat, after all," Laito mused teasingly. "Not a goody two shoes, I see."
"I've asked random people from my course if they know someone called Yui Komori, but they don't seem to recognize one," Ayato said bitterly.
"Hmm... Ayato-kun, what if she's not really studying in Ryoutei University?"
"Nah, that's impossible." The redhead frowned. There's no way Yui would lie to him about studying in Ryoutei. Besides, the only ones invited to their party were people from the university.
"Well, I guess we could just help you look for this Yui Komori," Laito offered with a beaming smile because if this is what it takes for Ayato to stop his endless sighing over hopeless longings, then so be it. Then he turned to Kanato, giving him the "help me out here or else I'll do something despicable to your belongings" look.
Kanato only sighed in exasperation.
What a drag.
It took four days before Laito informed Ayato something about Yui Komori. It happened one day while he was seeing this one random girl he hooked up with from the Philosophy Department. After their intense sex, she mentioned something along the lines of: "I know that girl. She never skips all the classes. But Laito-kun, she's a bit boring, though? Are you sure you're looking for the right girl?"
And another fun fact: Laito had the same class with the Komori girl at 3pm every Tuesdays.
So Ayato became Laito's substitute, sitting in an unfamiliar class with brand new faces. He looked around for any sign of pale blonde hair and flower hairpins and pink until he spotted her. She was careless and lively, giggling at something her classmates said. Afterwards, the class started, the professor making his usual roll call.
"Sakamaki Laito?"
Ayato raised his hand. "Here."
The professor didn't care, but some of the students whispered, "Eh? But that's not Laito, though. It's the Ayato one."
At the mention of his name, Yui whipped her head back and saw Ayato, sitting five rows away from her. She immediately turned away and tried to shrink from his presence.
What's he doing here?
Once classes ended, Yui quickly got out of her seat and rushed towards the door, letting the crowd of students from the hallway take her until Ayato couldn't see her anymore. Ayato sighed in defeat. It was a one-time chance, and yet he failed.
"So what now?" Laito asked, munching on his salted caramel popcorn as he watched this new movie he rented with Kanato at their living room. "You'll have to wait for Tuesday to see her again."
"I don't have time for that," Ayato countered. "My practice schedule has been moved to Tuesday next week."
Kanato buried his face into Teddy's head, hugging the stuffed bear closer. "We could ask Reiji to give us a copy of her schedule. He's doing an assistant teacher job until next month," he suggested, then he remembered, "Nah. It's a bad idea. As if Reiji would let us know someone's class schedule. He abides by the rule."
"Looks like there goes your hopes and dreams, Ayato-kun," Laito remarked in despair.
Or so they thought.
Why? Because Kanato passed by Yui Komori in the hallway on Thursday. What's more? Her class is held at room 403 from 1pm to 5pm.
He knew because he skipped one of his minor classes and see where this blonde girl will move. He even approached one of her classmates and pretended he was quite interested, making some nonsensical flirtatous remarks on her because the girl looked so easy.
"O-O-Oh that?" the poor girl tucked her hair behind her ear and shyly handed out her class schedule. "Y-You can check it; I don't mind. As long as we see each other after this."
As if Kanato will let that happen.
Ayato was chugging on one of his water bottles in the kitchen when Kanato approached him and said, "I saw your dream girl today."
The redhead stopped at that, turning all his focus on the middle triplet. "Where?"
Suddenly, Kanato whipped out his phone and typed something. Afterwards, Ayato's phone beeped and when he opened it, he received a picture of a class schedule.
"I met a girl who goes to all same classes with that Yui Komori," Kanato informed. "Make sure to use it wisely or else." Because I am so tired of you being so lovesick as hell.
"O-Oh," Ayato was glad. Finally, he could see her again. "Thanks, Kanato."
"Just buy me two pints of ice cream."
"Sure."
"I want the new biscoff one and the chocolate chip cookie."
"Yeah, yeah. Whatever."
Yui was bored. Apparently their professor for their 4-hour class this Friday afternoon was absent due to sudden cold. She sighed in her seat, contemplating where she could go since her next class would be for 6 pm onwards.
"U-Umm... Komori-san!" a female classmate called.
"Y-Yes?"
"Y-Your boyfriend's calling out for you."
"Eh? Boyfriend?"
Then she saw some of her classmates whispering to each other, glancing briefly at her before going back to their own businesses. Yui decided she should find ot who this mystery boyfriend, although there's only one person that comes to mind.
I hope he's not who I'm thinking.
"Yo, Chichinashi," Ayato greeted, the familiar smirk flashing on him. "It's been a while."
Yui blushed at the familiar nickname, the whispers behind her getting louder.
This was the start of a roller coaster story.
#Spotify#diabolik lovers#diahell#diabolik lovers headcanons#ayato sakamaki#laito sakamaki#kanato sakamaki#diabolik lovers modern college au#modern college au#yui komori#ayato x yui#ayayui#diabolik lovers ayato#yui komori headcanons#ayayui headcanons#ayayui fanfic#my ayayui heart#sakamaki brothers#sakamaki triplets
104 notes
¡
View notes
Text
Insight
A/N: Part 4 of the baby daddy chronicles. An insight into Attuma and Okoye's toxic ass relationship.
Other Baby Daddy Chronicles
Couple's therapy. Okoye's mother had suggested it first after walking in on one of their explosive arguments one day.
"If you're keeping that man around, you gotta learn how to stop being so petty with him." She had said, pinching her child's arm with a scowl. "I will take the children, and you two will go like adults and air your grievances."
That's how they ended up there. Okoye slouching into the couch deep on one end while Attuma got quite comfortable on the other end, every pillow possible wedged between them.
"So, What is the goal here?" The therapist, Namor, watched the couple take turns rolling their eyes and scoffing before Attuma took liberty to answer.
"I'm doing this for my kids." He sat up a little straighter at the thought of his girls while Okoye scoffed at his bullshit.
"We're doing this cause we're toxic."
Namor, pleasantly surprised by the maturity, smiled just a bit before jotting down some notes.
"Alright. Tell me how you met. Okoye?"
She could remember it like it happened just yesterday. There was a trail she used to walk almost everyday after work. She'd take 30 minutes to decompress before she went home with all the pent up tension.
Attuma had taken to the same routine and had gotten sick of not knowing a thing about the beautiful stranger that walked the trail. One day, they just ended up talking and walking together, staying at the park for almost an hour more than they intended.
Okoye caught her smile before it got too wide as she told the wholesome story. She spared quick glances at Attuma fidgeting with his fingers as he remembered the first thing she did when he approached was punch him in mouth before exclaiming her apologies.
"When we first started it was just sex. Once I got pregnant, then he decided he wanted to date me." Okoye held a certain scorn in her voice as she remembered the tears that burnt her eyes when she realized that she was carrying his children.
"That's not true. I always wanted to be with you. You just wouldn't stop running."
"I don't run, Attuma. That shit was all you!" Subconsciously, her voice began to raise as they continued to contradict eachother.
"I asked you out plenty! You were just too scared to say yes for once!"
"Please! I was just a body to you!" Okoye sucked her teeth, waving his claims off.
"What the hell are you talking about?!" Attuma, now turned towards her began to yell to the point that Namor was afraid he might get a noise complaint about the two.
Okoye of course wouldn't let him slide. "Who the fuck are you yelling at?!"
"You! Cause you don't fucking listen!" He turned to Namor who had turned to jotting down various notes as he listened to the petty spout. "Do you see what I deal with?"
"Uh uh don't go to him for help now!" A pillow got tossed away as Okoye sprung from her seat to across over to Attuma's side of the couch. "So you got feelings for those other bitches you fucking all the time too?!"
"Here we go."
"Nah since you had feelings for me right? You fall in love with every hoe you stick your dick in?!" She continued to invade his space, kicking at his leg lightly until she got a reaction out of him.
Attuma rolled his eyes as he leaned forward to shout in her face.
"How many times I gotta tell you?! Huh? I ain't fucking nobody else!"
"Liar!" Another pillow thrown towards him now. "Fuck you!" Okoye pushed at his shoulder until he rose from his seat and caught her wrists.
"Like you so innocent..Who was that I caught all laid up on you when I went to pick the kids up last week huh?! I'll fuck up whoever you got around my kids! I don't give a shit!"
"That shit is childish! You're childish Attuma!" Okoye tried failed to break from his grip as she continued to yell profanities into his face. "Get the fuck off of me! Grimy ass hands prolly touched every bitch in town!"
She twisted and turned until she got a hand free, only to reel it back and send him a searing slap to his cheek in her rage.
The room enveloped in silence as Namor sat, too used to situations like this to really react. Okoye, feeling a ping of guilt as Attuma's cheek turned a dark shade of red due to the impact but also much to prideful and stubborn to apologize.
Attuma, face burning from the slap, only shook his head as he watched the pity tears fall from her eyes.
"Tell the girls I'll be around to get them on Saturday." He muttered, grabbing his jacket and leaving the room, making sure to slam the door on his way out.
It only took a beat of silence before Okoye slunk back down on the couch, her tears running down her face as she realized what she had done.
"I didn't mean to hit him!" She cried. "I-I just got so pissed! I couldn't think!"
Namor supplied her a box of tissues. "Well...at least now I have some idea of what I'm working with."
#attuma#alex livinalli#attoye#attuma x okoye#wakanda forever#attoye fanfic#black panther#okoye x attuma#danai gurira#mcu okoye#attoye angst#alternate universe#baby daddy
67 notes
¡
View notes
Text
Firsts
AO3 | Part 1 of 12 (each chapter is a standalone)
>> Firsts: Panic Attack || masterlist
Pairing: Eddie Munson x Female Henderson!Reader
wc: 3.1K
warnings: none, some heavy kissing, drinking, cursing
A/N: Hi! It's me again, back on my bullshit, obsessed and inspired by your lovely messages. This follows the same eddie x henderson!reader from: Don't You (Forget About Me) and Object of My Desire. There are going to be 12 parts -- all detailing first time moments -- but they can all be read as standalones. Some intertwine with a later story idea I have (that I'm waiting for volume 2 to post!) this chapter has no S4 spoilers. Your comments, kudos, and messages give this adhd ridden hyperfixated weirdo life, tysm!
First Kiss
The first time you had kissed him, Eddie was almost sure heâd accidentally smoked a laced joint and had hallucinated the whole thing. Then, youâd snuck your hand into his hair and tugged his neck back. If that hadnât been enough to turn him on, you had bit down on his neck â worrying the skin between your lips -- and Eddie was halfway in love.
His day had started normally. Heâd spent all day in his mind-numbingly boring classes, eating lunch while terrorizing the cafeteria, sold some bud, and planned his next campaign. He didnât think this was where heâd be by the end of it.
He promised Rick that heâd sell the rest of his stock to make room for some new stuff coming in next week. The best customers were none other than the seniors of Hawkins High. Fortunately for him, it was also the week of Halloween. While he normally wouldnât be caught dead at any school dance, he knew it was his best bet. Heâd hang around for an hour, sell out, and go home a happy guy. Maybe pick up some pizza and a movie for the night.
âDude, I didnât know you were here selling,â Jeff, his fellow Hellfire Club member, said just as heâd stepped into the gym.
âWhat are you dressed as?â Eddie asked, eyeing his outfit.
âTommy Lee!â Jeff grinned at him, pulling out a pair of drumsticks. Eddie nodded, offering up his fist.
âThatâs sick,â he said, glancing around the room. He caught a few odd stares, ignoring them, and a good amount of interested ones.
âDo me a favor dude,â Eddie, grabbed Jeffâs sleeve before his date could steal him away. âSpread the word that Iâve got some stuff to sell.â
Jeff shot the chaperoneâs a look before nodding. âI got you man,â he slapped Eddieâs back before going off to the dance floor.
Eddie stationed himself at the edge of the bleachers, mostly hidden by some decorations. He grinned when a basketball player approached him after a few minutes. Typical.
âWhat are you supposed to be?â Eddie snorted, glancing at the pathetic costume.
âA cowboy,â the guy â Nick? Adam? â sneered. âYou got any or what?â
âOr what,â Eddie muttered, handing him a small bag. âSame price.â
The cowboy handed him two pairs of freshly printed, crisp bills. âPleasure doing business,â Eddie tilted his imaginary hat. Without a word, the cowboy turned on his heel and walked away. Oh the irony of being outcast by the top tier only to have them crawl to him for their needs.
Thirty minutes later, Eddie was all but sold out. He had two joints left but he knew he could smoke through them if he didnât have any more buyers. Eddie ran a sweaty hand through his hair, why did the gym always feel like it was a thousand degrees, and caught sight of a teacher walking in his direction.
Without preamble, he ducked under the bleachers and waited her out.
âMunson?â A voice called out. Eddie whipped around, startled out of his fucking mind â who hell hides under the bleachers?
âJesus fucking Christ Harrington, youâre going to give me a heart attack,â Eddie said, clutching at his heart dramatically. If he was going to be over the top, why stop because he was hiding?
Steve laughed, as if that was the most hilarious joke heâd ever heard. âUh, Harrington?â Eddie called out, taking a few steps towards him. Steve was leaning against the wall, his legs sprawled and expression akin to someone whoâd lost their puppy. As Eddie bent down, he wrinkled his nose. âShit, Harrington, thatâs some shitty tequila.â
âYou want some?â He said, perking up. Eddie winced as his arm smacked into his side, the bottle sloshing. Eddie picked it out his hand before he could spill anymore. He sniffed it experimentally and shrugged, why not? He took a swig and fought the urge to spit it out. That, is why not, he thought to himself, gagging.
âThis tastes like lighter fluid,â Eddie told him, âand Iâm not exactly known for having refined taste.â
Steve grinned. âGood shit, right?â
âThat was not a compliment,â Eddie told him, standing up. âWhy are you piss drunk, dressed like Mario, at a school dance? Isnât there somewhere, I donât know, with less supervision that you could be doing this?â
âNope,â Steve said, popping his lips obnoxiously. âLove sucks, man.â
Eddie fought the urge to roll his eyes. Heâd heard that King Steve had broken up with the perfect Nancy Wheeler. He had a hard time believing that someone like Harrington couldnât get another date, he drove around a BMW for shitâs sake.
âHey, do you have anyâŚ.â Steve trailed off, looking confused.
âWeed?â
Steve brightened, snapping his fingers and missing. âYeah!â
âItâs your lucky day Harrington, Iâve got two joints left,â Eddie said, tossing one into his hands.
It took him a minute, but Steve handed him a few crumpled bills from the front pocket of his denim overalls. Eddie tried really hard not to contemplate his life.
âSteve Harrington!â A new, distinctly annoyed, voice cried out. âWhat the fuck is wrong with you? I turn around to dance for two seconds and you disappear.â
Eddie watched, a little awed, as you stomped over to them. Without hesitation, a pink heeled foot kicked Steveâs leg. âGet up you moping loser, you promised me dancing,â you said.
âIâm sad,â Steve whined, moving to stand regardless. Even Eddie rolled his eyes at that one. He shouldâve known â Harrington seemed super glued to your side this year. Where you went, he usually followed.
âGo be sad on the dance floor!â You urged, hopping in one place, the pink dress around you moving fluidly with you.
Eddie tried his best not to let his eyes settle onto your chest but, he was only a mere mortal, and the more you bounced â the more your assets bounced with you.
A third voice joined the fray and Eddie ducked. You glanced at him, as if surprised he was there, and blinked. âDonât worry,â you whispered, âNatashaâs not a narc.â
âDamn right Iâm not,â the girl dressed like a skeleton said. She wrapped Steveâs arm around her shoulders and winced at his breath. âJesus Harrington, canât you hold your liquor?â
âCan you get him something to drink?â You asked her, your face wrinkling in worry. âHe needs to sober up a little before we go home.â
âAt this rate, Ameliaâs the only one who hasnât touched the stuff,â Natasha snorted, dragging Steve out from under the bleachers.
You turned to him and squinted. Eddie grinned, excited to have your attention. With a flourish, he bowed. âPleasure to see you tonight, if youâre looking for some weed â youâre in luck. Iâve got one left,â he said.
âWhat are you dressed as?â You asked, completely ignoring his question. Eddie quirked his brow and realized that your eyes were also a little glazed over.
âAs a demon cult leader, what do you think? Did I do okay?â Eddie turned in a circle, putting on his show. He turned back to you, expecting you to look annoyed or put off â like everyone in the popular crowd did when faced with himself. Eddie felt his whole-body freeze when he caught your heated stare. You dragged your gaze up his body and Eddie swore he felt it like a physical touch.
Well, that was new.
âIâd say you look good, but you usually do,â you said, stepping towards him. Eddie, instinctively, took a step back. Scared and turned on were a very weird, although not unheard of, combination for him.
âBack at you princess,â he said, trying not to sound breathless. What the fuck?
At that, you quirked your head. âPrincess?â
Eddie smirked, letting his obvious gaze trail down your body. You were clearly dressed as Princess Peach, your yellow wig pulled back into a messy ponytail, althoughâŚ
âFrom my recollection, Princess Peach never wore a dress that short,â he said, eyeing your legs. He braced himself for a scathing reply but found you laughing instead. What the hell was it about this holiday that made people go insane?
âPrincess Peach never had to attend a dance in an old smelly gym,â you said matter-of-factly. âShort as it is, it still feels like itâs a thousand degrees in here.â
âItâs the testosterone and steroids from the basketball team,â Eddie quipped, raising his brow. âNo offense to your boyfriend.â
âSteve Harrington is not my boyfriend,â you said, laughing like that was the funniest joke youâd ever heard. âHeâs literally crying over his break up.â
âWeirder things have happened,â he said, leaning against the wall. âIâm pretty sure-â
âSo, this might be the tequila,â you interrupted him, loudly, âbut I really want to kiss you.â
Eddie wouldâve been less surprised if youâd taken out a baseball bat and smacked him with it.
âUh, how much tequila?â Eddie asked.
You shrugged, stepping closer to him, âenough to make me feel good, not enough to not know what Iâm doing.â
âYou know,â he said, pensive, âthat is really good enough for me.â
âGreat!â You said, throwing yourself at him.
Eddie winced as your foot collided with his ankle but quickly forgot about the pain when your lips pressed against his. He dropped his hands to your waist, the rough fabric bunching around his grip.
You tasted like tequila, fruit punch, and something else he couldnât put his finger on. You were soft, so fucking soft, and pliant. Hands frantic, you fisted his collar as if assuring yourself he wasnât going anywhere. Fucking zombies couldnât pry him away with their cold dead hands.
Eddie felt you lean back for air, your eyes had a glint in them that he couldnât describe and soon after, youâd pulled his head back by his hair. With his neck exposed, you latched on and Eddie desperately tried to remember that youâd both get in a lot of trouble if you were caught from the noises that were trying to claw out of him. Satisfied with the bruise youâd left, you beamed up at him and Eddie couldnât help the fond smile he shot you back.
âDidnât take you for a biter,â he said, thumb coming to swipe across your lower lip.
âIâm not usually, youâre just enjoyable,â you said nonchalantly and unaffected, like you werenât just shaking up his entire world. Unable to help himself, he nipped at the crook of your neck and was rewarded with the most delicious sounding moan. He wanted to carve that noise into his memory.
You immediately pushed him back, eyes hooded, and lips swollen. The red bite heâd placed on your neck felt like a neon sign and he couldnât help but feel turned on by it. Holy shit, he couldnât believe this was actually happening.
Then, with a quick motion, you dropped to the floor. Eddie jerked forward, worried youâd tripped or something when he realized you were kneeling. He straightened and shot you a confused look.
âCome on,â you urged, placing a warm hand on his calf.
Come on what? He thought, still wildly confused. He watched your lips part and you looked up at him through your lashes. Eddie shifted, his dick trying to get in on the action as well. He froze. NoâŚyou couldnât⌠Eddie dropped his gaze to you and you shifted your weight onto your heels, hands reaching for his belt.
âDonât you want me to?â You asked, smiling sweetly up at him. Holy fucking shit, Eddie thought. Maybe he was hallucinating? Thereâs no way you â you of all people â were on your knees during a Halloween dance, under the bleachers, with him, dressed like goddamn wet dream, and offering him a blow job. He nodded absently, still dazed and trying to process this moment, and you beamed.
Your impatient hands fumbled with his studded belt and Eddie reached out to help you. He stepped back, needing the space to unbuckle his pants, and watched as you fell forward.
âShit, are you okay?â Eddie asked, looking for what you tripped over.
âI may be drunker than I realized,â you said, giggling. Eddie felt his blood freeze. Fuck. Slowly, he untangled your hands from his waistband and lowered himself to the floor next to you. âWhyâd you stop?â
Eddie sighed, leaning his forehead against yours. âIâm pretty sure, given your squeaky-clean reputation, youâre not the type to lightly offer up what you just did,â he bumped your nose with his and felt his stupid, idiotic, heart flip at the sight of your wide smile. âDefinitely not sober at least.â
âIâve only had one boyfriend before,â you whispered, falling over onto your butt. You blinked, as if shocked, and brought your gaze back to him. âWe did stuff, Iâm not some stumbling virgin.â
âIâm sure youâre an absolute minx,â Eddie said, biting back laughter at your serious nod.
âHe said I was good,â you frowned, looking pensive. âAlthough, he was also a virgin when we met so maybe I wasnât?â
Nothing like tequila to bring around an existential crisis and brutal honesty. He was sure this wasnât something youâd be telling him if you were sober. Still, Eddie couldnât handle your sad little frown. He placed a hand on your bare knee, flinching at how hot your skin was. Although he was the one whoâd touched you, it felt like you had branded him.
In fact, he was pretty sure heâd be unable to forget about this interaction for a while. Now that youâd caught his attention, you werenât likely to go anywhere. âIâm pretty sure you rocked his world and have no doubt you could rock mine too. Especially considering that thatâs how you kiss when youâre drunk. Not sure if I can handle a sober one.â
You grinned, lighting up the entirety of this dirty dark corner â even a little piece of him. Fuck, how had he never noticed how pretty you were? He thought back on all the times heâd seen you around the school. Â
âCome on, letâs get you back to your friends,â Eddie said, lifting you up. You laughed, your breath fanning over the darkening hickey on his neck.
He knew you floated from group to group, notorious for having friends in every clique, club, and class. Shit, even Billy Hargrove seemed to have an eye on you â not that youâd accepted any of his advances. Jeff had almost peed himself laughing when youâd kneed him in the balls for trying to cage you in by your locker before homeroom.
Anyone with eyes knew how hot you were, Gareth had even mentioned it a few times â especially in Physics, the only class you shared with them. You seemed to always have a sarcastic quip or friendly jab at the ready. Good grades, popular, sarcastic, and ready to throw a punch was exactly what he liked about you and exactly what put you so far out his league it was painful.
He emerged from the bleachers with a glance around the gym and tried to find your friends from earlier. One of your fingers trailed down his abdomen, your lips pressing an open mouthed kiss to his neck, and he groaned. Out of his league or not, you had been the one to come onto him. Because sheâs drunk, Eddieâs stupidly moral mind reminded him. But what if she is interested? You obviously weren't wound as tight as Wheeler but was clearly not someone who offered without thought. Tequila did have a way of changing people thoughâŚ
As he dropped you off next to a slumped Harrington, he caught the eye of the skeleton girl from earlier. She shot Eddie a thumbs up and started to make her way to the table.
âHey,â he squatted down next to you.
âHey handsome,â you said, giggling again.
Eddie really needed to get a fucking grip. Heâd barely spared you much thought before tonight and in fifteen minutes youâd all but carved your name into his skin. Whatâs worse? He didnât mind a bit. Shit, he really was a loser.
âIâm gonna go,â he said, âyou gotta keep an eye on Harrington, okay? Your friend is on her way over to make sure youâre okay.â
âYou donât want to dance with me?â You asked, wide, beautiful eyes stabbing at his conscience.
âYouâre a little too drunk for that right now, okay?â Eddie tugged a lock of your synthetic hair. âIâll save you a dance at the next party.â
You nodded, trusting him entirely, and wobbled in your seat. âIâll see you tomorrow?â You squinted.
Eddie huffed a laugh. âTomorrow is Saturday princess. Iâll see you Monday,â he added quickly when you frowned sadly.
âDonât forget about me,â you stumbled, hand still clenched around his, âpromise?â
âSweetheart, Iâm absolutely positive that this night is branded into my memory for life,â he said, standing and pressing a kiss to your temple. Last one.
âBye cult leader,â you whispered, laughing at your own joke. Skeleton girl dropped into the seat between them and exhaled.
âThanks Munson, I owe you one,â she said.
Eddie waved away her gratitude and took one last look at his Princess Peach.
âSee ya,â he said, forcing himself to walk away. Heâd barely made it to the doors when Jeff all but jumped him.
âDude, what the hell were you doing with Henderson?â Jeff asked.
Henderson? Aw shit, that was Dustinâs older sister. Eddie groaned; heâd completely forgotten. In his defense, most of his blood was firmly south of the border. Â
Jeff blinked at him, waiting for an answer and EddieâŚhesitated. He didnât know why, but he wanted to keep tonight to himself. âHarrington was buying and Henderson followed. Theyâre drunk and I was just helping her back to her table.â
âWhich is why you kissed her?â
âWhat?â Eddie froze.
Jeff eyed him. âI saw you; you kissed her forehead. Iâm amazed she didnât threaten to cut off your dick. Hendersonâs cool but I wouldnât fuck with her.â
Eddie exhaled, relieved. âRight. Uh, I donât know. You know me man, Iâm crazy.â
âShit, I didnât think you were that crazy,â Jeff said, shaking his head. âRespect man.â
âIâll see you Monday,â Eddie said, âIâm out of here.â
âLater dude!â
Eddie took one last look at your table, where you were being force fed some food before disappearing out the doors. He brought his fingers up to his neck like he could still feel the ghost of your lips as you nipped him. Eddie hopped into his car and finally relaxed into his seat.
What a fucking night.
>> Firsts: Panic Attack, Part 2
A/N: guys, I also am very aware that I messed up the timeline for S3, S4 and when Don't You (Forget About Me) happens so we're just gonna smile and wave like that little mistake isn't there lol in my defense, I didn't think I was going to build a whole series around that one shot! muaha, I fixed it!
930 notes
¡
View notes
Text
đđĄđđ˘đĽđ¨đ đđ đđ¨ (Robin Arellano) Final Part
Pairing: Robin Arellano x Fem!Reader
Word Count: 1,955
Date Published: 8/9/22
Tags: Angst, AU, Alternate Universe, Heartbreak, breakups, (past) fluff, eventual Vance Hopper X Reader, time-skips, flashbacks, confessions, fighting.
Description: (This AU Has no grabber what so ever. It's just with the characters. I'm also making them all 16-17 just because it seems better to me lol.)
You and Robin had been dating for quite a while. It all went downhill When he began to get into fights again. A bit later, you get with someone else. How will Robin handle seeing you with someone who isn't him?
Full Chapterlist
(taglist)
@jackie-xoxo
@jadearellano
@wowwontonsoup
@liissharks
@kennedy4262
âŻÂ¸.â˘Â´*¨`*â˘âż âżâ˘*`¨*`â˘.¸âŻ
đđ°đąđŞđŻđ¨ đ'đđ đ§đŞđŻđĽ
As you locked the car door you shivered slightly. You had been in such a rush that you didn't bring a jacket. The dock looked abandoned as usual, other than a small group of other teens on the other side skinny dipping. It wasn't unusual, you just hoped that whoever wanted to meet you here wasn't wanting to participate In that. You made your way down the old dock. At the end, there was an old wooden bench. Wiping the dust off of it, you took a seat and looked around the lake. There wasn't anyone right by you. You enjoyed the peace and quiet.
You soon heard the crunch of leaves behind you, followed by footsteps on the old wood. You turned to your right, expecting to see Vance. It wasn't Vance. It was Robin. He looked the same as usual. You did notice that he was wearing a different belt buckle. You were a bit confused to see that it was the one you got him months ago. "Can I sit here?" You mumbled a yes. It was quiet for a while. Not awkward, just tense. As if you both didn't want to talk. "So you left the note in my locker?" You asked. "Yeah. I did." You slumped a little. "Do you want someone else here?" He turned to face you. "No no. It's not that. I just thought that it was Vance who left it." He gave you a sad look.
"Did he forget it was your birthday?" You didn't want to say yes. "That little prick." His tone of voice changed as he began to tap his knee. "He doesn't deserve you." You looked at Robin with more confusion. "He treats you like absolute shit. He ditches you for other people, yells at you constantly, and is borderline abusive. You don't deserve to be treated like that at all." You just sat there. "That's the same thing he said about you." He stopped tapping his knee. "That night at the roller rink. After we left he kept telling me about how 'He doesn't want to see me hurt again' and how 'I deserve so much better." It was complete bullshit. I wanted to stay back and talk with you. But of course he had to start a fight. I contemplated not going with him and just staying with you but-" You stopped when you processed what you were saying. You just outted your feelings to Robin again. You were still with Vance and he was still with Paige. Why did he come here anyways?
Robin held out his hand, signaling for you to open yours. He then handed you the other half of the bandana from the roller rink. "I fixed it for you. I sewed the rips. That way you don't have to keep the other half in your pocket all day. Maybe you can sew it back together." You couldn't help but blush. How did he know you always kept it in your pocket? It never went In our out unless you were in your room. "Look (y/n)." Robin scooted closer to you, turning his body to face you fully.
"Before Vance interrupted at the rink, I was going to say I'm sorry." You couldn't look at him. You couldn't bring yourself to do it. He sighed before going into greater detail.
"I'm sorry that I broke up with you. Especially the way it went down. Words cannot express how sorry I am. I never wanted to break up with you. I never wanted to go back to Paige. Everything she said was a lie. I never went to go see her. My Abuela was really sick. Or to say all those things about you. None of them were true. I was just so angry at myself. I took it out on you for no reason either. I shouldn't have let it get to the point where you were crying. And I'm sorry I forgot out anniversary. That was a dick move of me. I know that made all of it worse. And I'm sorry that I got into so many fights. I thought it would make me look better. That winning all of them would show how strong and confident I was. I just wanted to impress you was all. And I realize now it wasn't the correct way to do it. I got a bit jealous over the fact that Vance was hanging out with you more. You just make me feel something I can't explain. I don't know how to put it into words. You make me nervous, but I also get really happy. I Get all fidgety and talkative. Every time I see you and you smile at me it makes me feel like I got hit in the face. But in a good way. You're really pretty too. It's really hard to look away from you sometimes. And I care about you so much. You mean more to me than anyone in this world. And I don't wanna hurt you. But I know I did hurt you. With everything I've said and done. I didn't want to lose you either. But I did that too. I don't want to lose you again. It was wrong of me to compare you to Paige. The only reason I got back with was because I was lonely. I don't feel anything for her. Every thing we did, every hug she gave me, anything. I pretended it was you. I tried so hard to get over you. But I can't. You've shown me more love and affection than anyone else ever has. And that's why I care about you a lot. I want to protect you. I want you to be be happy. Every time I saw you cry it made me want to cry. I just want you to feel the same about me. I just want you to lo-"
"Love you?"
Robin froze. He was now standing up and in some over exaggerated pose. He always moves when he talks so it wasn't a surprise. When you met his eyes you could tell he was trying his hardest to hold back tears. "Yes. I want you to love me. When you told me on the hill, it hit me like a brick. That you did love me. That you felt the same way I feel now. And I didn't notice that. And I fucked up and then you got with Vance. But he's also-" Robin stopped speaking when you pressed your lips to his. He stood there in shock. When you stepped back you looked at him again, you could see he was crying.
"I'm sorry too Robin. For saying everything I said. And comparing you to Vance. I shouldn't have said any of that either. I did the same thing. I just Imagined Vance was you the entire time. It didn't do anything. All those fights you got into? I had to walk away so I wouldn't beat the shit out of the other person for hitting you. Or so I didn't come up to make sure you weren't hurt too badly. But I do love you robin. Even after we broke up. I never moved on. I couldn't. I still can't. I stay up every night waiting for you to climb through my window still."
He walked over and pulled you into his arms. He stood there as he laid his head on top of yours. You stood there, savoring the moment. This is what you'd been waiting for. For months, you waited to feel this type of love. "I accept your apology." You say into his chest. You can feel him laugh. "I accept yours too." After what seemed like minuets the two of you untangled. "So, what are we now?" You couldn't help but laugh as Robin asked. "Back together. Well, I mean if you want to be. Of course if you-"
"I'd love to be, "Mi corazĂłn." A large smile was plastered on your face with his answer. The two of you walked from the dock and back to the parking lot. As you did so, you heard someone calling your name. you turned to see Vance walking angrily towards you both. When he reached you he began shouting. "What the hell is this?! Why are you with him?" He screamed. "Why were you with Paige earlier?" Vance went silent. On cue, again. Paige walked up behind him, calling his name.
"Robbie, why are you with her?" She sneered. "Don't call me that. And because we're dating again." Her jaw dropped. "Vance, I'm breaking up with you." He looked over to you. "You can't-" "Yes. I can. And I did." You grabbed Robin's Hand and began to walk off. You paused for a moment before shouting back to Paige. "He has AIDS by the way! From all the other girls he's been with!" The two of you watched and cackled as they fought.
"So you didn't drive here?" Robin shook his head. "So you walked." He nodded. At least you had a car now. He complimented it when you two made It to the parking lot. He walked over to get in but stopped when he saw you standing there. "Do you mind-" "Just hand me the keys." You smiled as you handed him your car keys and got in the passengers side. On the car ride back to your house, you both had the windows rolled down and the radio blasting Pink Floyd.
︾âżď¸ľâżď¸ľâżď¸ľâżď¸ľ
You mom still wasn't home. So you decided to let Robin sneak in. It wasn't exactly sneaking in if he went through the open front door. The two of you sat at the dining table eating your cake for a while before you decided to go to your room. When he walked in he smiled proudly. "Glad to see nothing's changed." He walked over to your record collection and began to peek through. The two of you sat on the bed playing your guitar for a while. That turned into a talk about school drama. Then that turned into something about animals. "Before I forget..." Robin begins to dig in his pocket. He pulls out. a small bag. Inside is an obsidian necklace. It has a locket at the end. Inside is a photo of the two of you on your first date. You smile and kiss his cheek. "I love it."
"You still kept it?" You set your necklace down and looked over to see Robin holding your cow. "Oh-yeah."
"I'd kinda hug it everynight since you weren't here." You laid on your back and looked up to the ceiling. "Well now I am." You felt his arm wrap around your waist, and pull you into his chest. The two of you stayed like this as you felt yourself grow sleepier. You turned over to look at him as your eyes began to droop. "Goodnight Robin."
"Goodnight (Y/n)."
︾âżď¸ľâżď¸ľâżď¸ľâżď¸ľ
You bolted up right in bed. You were struggling to breathe for a moment as you sweat heavily and tears were pouring down your face. You aggressively felt around the bed for another person as you struggled to see in the dark. You didn't stop until someone grabbed your hand. Robin slowly sat up next to you and turned the light on. "(Y/n)..what's wrong? Why are you-" He heard you sniffle before you hugged him tightly. "What'd you dream about?" You explained the dream in vivid detail. You couldn't hold back your sobs. When you finished Robin cupped his face in your hands. "That'll never happen. (Y/n) you know I care about you too much to do that." He reassured you for a while until you calmed down enough. When you laid back down he placed a kiss on your forehead. "I love you Mi corazĂłn." You smiled as you closed your eyes. "I love you too Robin."
The sound of rain hitting your window was even more comforting than usual tonight.
đ đ¨đđŞđŽđąđ´đŚ đ°đ§ đśđ´
âŻÂ¸.â˘Â´*¨`*â˘âż âżâ˘*`¨*`â˘.¸âŻ
Fin.
#the black phone#tbp#xreader#reader insert#angst#robin arellano#finney blake#female reader#slow burn#Robin Arellano x reader#the black phone x reader#x reader series#series#robinsrelic#vancehopper#bruce yamada#finishedseries#theend
264 notes
¡
View notes
Text
love me or we both go down | kth
summary:Â after going through with an arranged marriage to please his parents and secure his inheritance of the family business, kim taehyung thinks heâs got it all figured out. he doesnât. apparently just being married to you isnât enough, not when everybody and their mother can pick up on the fact that the two of you absolutely loathe each other. but taehyung wants his inheritance one way or another, so he decides that desperate times call for desperate measures: the two of you need to fall in love, and you need to fall in love fast.
{enemies to lovers!au, arranged marriage!au, rich kids!au}
pairing: kim taehyung x female reader genre: fluff, angst, smut (i know, crazy right?) word count: 32k warnings:Â oral sex (m & f receiving), fingering, penetrative sex, multiple unprotected sex scenes (theyâre married yâall), fat cock tae, tae has a wife kink, lots of praise, alcohol consumption (but theyâre safe), minor character death (not explicit), mentions of heart attack, slow burn like there is no tomorrow a/n: hello and welcome to the fic everyone, literally everyone, has been waiting for! i am so, so, so excited to share this with you all, especially because none other than rose @kinktaeâ helped me write the smut, and i am literally forever indebted to her. you all better go spam rose with all the love and support you can because this fic would not be here without her and i love her so much.Â
also, to all my readers who arenât comfortable reading smut, please know that the smut in this fic is not imperative to the storyline, and you skipping past it will not affect your reading experience., enjoy!
Never in your life have wedding bells felt so ominous.
The sound of them is akin to the sound of strings, of a single piano note in a horror movie, right when the film opens and someone random is about to die on screen for the sake of proving to the audience that this is, in fact, a horror movie. Make no mistake about it; these wedding bells spell doom for you, too. And the most horrific part about them is that just like that poor, helpless soul in the movie, there is no way for you to escape your fate either.Â
With only seconds left to go before you have no choice but to promise yourself to the man waiting at the other end of the aisle, you desperately try to think of any last-ditch efforts to get out of this. Many, if not all of them, are utterly useless.Â
Feigning sudden illness wonât work, because then your parents will just reschedule the wedding to a later date. Running away is fruitless. Where will you go? The parking lot?
If only you had a lover out there in the audience somewhere that could object to the marriage when the officiant says, âSpeak now, or forever hold your peace.â A knight in shining armor that could whisk you out of the venue and off to a new life, far away from here. Too bad all of the people youâve dated before hate you now.Â
Maybe getting married isnât such a bad thing after all. Instead of having relationships with multiple people who will eventually despise your existence, you only have to have a relationship with one. And the feeling, as has always been, is mutual.Â
You bristle as your assistants do some last-minute prepping, fixing your sleeve and adjusting your necklace and making sure you donât trip on your enormous train. They flutter around you like a swarm of well-meaning but ignorant butterflies complicit in the agenda of your family. None of them have said a word to you about the wedding ever since you arrived at the venue, choosing to talk more about things like the weather. Not that you were ever under the impression they had been hired to entertain you. Maybe they were told to not engage you, just in case you try to conspire with them.
As if they could be of any use in your wildly unrealistic escape plans.Â
The truth is that, unless you were to drop dead on this marble flooring right now, youâre getting married. Whether you like it or not.
The doors open.Â
Youâve attended red carpets, galas, award shows, and balls. Youâve had hundreds of cameras flashing in your face, the bright light capturing each and every centimeter of you. Youâve had paparazzi waiting outside the restaurants you eat at, the stores you shop at, desperate to catch a picture of you in sweatpants without a drop of makeup on. Youâve been on dates with ex-lovers that looked at you like you were a piece of meat with a credit card. And yet, for some goddamn reason, walking down the aisle in a white dress the size of Pluto, with the rest of your life waiting for you at the other end, makes you feel fucking transparent.Â
Face resolute, you clutch onto your bouquet so tightly the flowers feel like theyâre about to pop right out of your grasp. Determined not to look at anybody in the audience, you stare straight ahead, right into the eyes of your future husband.
Kim Taehyung, for someone you have seen multiple times drunk off his ass with hickies dotting his neck and jawline, cleans up pretty well. For someone getting married, at least. He dons a simple black tuxedo that still probably costs more than the average car, his caramel brown hair is pushed back off his forehead, and his expression is firm and still. He most certainly has had an equally expensive team prepping him, but they havenât done too bad a job. The silver lining is that he doesnât look any more thrilled than you are to be doing this, right here, right now. But to his credit, this is definitely the best heâs ever looked, as far as youâre concerned.Â
When you reach him, he offers his hand out to you, a hand that you only accept for the sake of professionalism. The bouquet in your hands is handed off to one of your bridesmaids, and the two of you take your position at the front. Your train drags along the aisle, draping over the few stairs you had to climb to reach the altar, this satin trail behind you that cements you to the floor. It may as well be a ball-and-chain. Itâs about as heavy as one, anyway.Â
This is the longest you and Taehyung have ever held eye contact. Not that youâre really keeping track of how long the two of you have met each otherâs gazes, but if you had to make an educated guess, this would definitely be the victor. Most of the time you end up sneering at each other ten seconds in, but to be fair, those other times you were also not getting married. To one another. In a ceremony attended by hundreds of people. And cameras.
There can be no sneering here.Â
âDonât you look nice?â Taehyung whispers, loud enough so only the two of you can hear. He has that drawling, sickly sweet tone to his voice, the one that you hate because it makes him sound like he thinks heâs so much better than everyone else. âSurprised they were able to makeup that scowl off your face.â
This, of course, brings on a hearty scowl only he can see, your backs both facing the rows of attendees. âHow much concealer are you wearing to cover up all of the hickies on your neck?â You quip back easily. Itâs not like the two of you are going to pretend he doesnât waltz around at every club or bar or private venue he can find, looking for his next treat.Â
âWouldnât you like to know?â Taehyung grins, and if you werenât standing in front of hundreds of people about to get married, thereâs no telling what next you would do.
The two of you would probably go on like that for another ten minutes if itâs not for the officiant, who coughs once heâs ready and opens the book in his hands. Next to you, Taehyung straightens, hands clasped together at his front, and lips pressed into a neat line. You do the same. There will be no giggles, no laughter nor smiles, nor any genuine emotion at this wedding. This is a wedding for the sake of politics, for economics, for security, and anyone in attendance would be a fool to think otherwise. Especially you.Â
âLadies and gentlemen, family and friends, loved ones, and esteemed guests,â the officiant bellows, listing off as many groups of people as he possibly can in an effort to both include and compliment every person in the audience, âWe are gathered here to celebrate the wedding, and future life, of Taehyung and Y/NâŚâ
Taehyung turns to you, grinning in that god-awful way, the way he does when he feels like heâs got something over you. And sure, you canât think of any punishment quite as bad as this, but whatâs Taehyung got to smile about? Heâs marrying himself off to a woman he hates, kissing goodbye his days as a free-spirited, heartbreaking bachelor, and promising what may very well be the rest of his life to loving you. That is not cause for celebration.Â
But perhaps, to him, your suffering is enough to bring a smile to his face.Â
Your vows are, to put it simply, total bullshit. Your family hired someone to write yours and thereâs not a doubt in your mind that his family did the same thing. This nonsense talk, this complete and utter garbage that spews from your perfectly-glossed lips, shit about how you promise to love each other until the end of your days, how you promise to take care of each other when youâre sick and accompany each other at every event, every gala, every ball. Shit about how you promise to look only at each other, promise to uphold your family traditions and become a dependable spouse.Â
The words donât belong to you. But the thing is that this marriage was never yours anyway.Â
When the kiss comes, thereâs a part of you that thinks maybe you should have psyched yourself up a little more for this. When Taehyung pulls you in, placing a stiff hand on your lower back as he brings you towards his chest, your stomach turns and shivers run down your spine. The feeling of his hand on your body, the breath from his lips brushing against your own, are enough to keep you frozen in place.Â
He smiles at you, almost as if to ask, âAre you ready?â
And you squeeze your eyes shut, almost as if to respond, âLetâs do this.â
When his lips meet yours, there is almost nothing. Nothing runs through you, nothing explodes, nothing strikes. But when he pulls away and cheers and applause rings out throughout the room, there is something. A little heat, a remnant of a flame, left on your lips. A little sting, just to remind you it happened.Â
The entire hall is cheering but nothing about this is worth celebrating. The fact of the matter is that you and Taehyung will never love each other the way that you are supposed to.Â
âUgh, finally.â
The elevator doors havenât even properly opened by the time Taehyung is loosening his tie, tugging it off over his head as he stretches his head back and runs a hand through his perfectly-styled hair. As he rakes his fingers through his caramel locks, the hairspray and gel loosens, strands falling down by the side of his face, framing his temple.
âDonât sound so relieved,â you huff out, deciding now is as good a time as any to start getting undressed yourself. Reaching down to lift up the hem of your reception dress, you tug off your heels, already feeling lighter on your feet. Who cares if Taehyung is watching you pull off your stilettos like a defeated movie heroine? You donât think you can walk another step in those shoes. âWe still have to live together, you know.â
âDonât remind me,â Taehyung says gruffly, brushing by you roughly as he stomps out of the elevator. âIâm just glad the fucking night is over. I swear, seeing that fake-ass smile on your face made me want to gouge my eyes out.â
You storm after him, refusing to be the helpless damsel in this situation. âOh, like you didnât also have that exact same fake-ass smile on your face. It almost made me think you were actually enjoying yourself tonight.â
âI was only enjoying the fact that I know you hate this just as much as I do.â Itâs perhaps the only thing you will ever be able to empathize with him on. Mutually relishing in the otherâs destruction. Taehyung fumbles with the keypad to the door to the penthouse for a moment before you hear the lock click, the door sliding open as the entrance lights flicker on.Â
The reason Taehyungâs penthouse is so clean is because heâs never lived here before. Neither of you haveâTaehyungâs parents bought it just for the two of you. And as much as you absolutely despise the idea of having to live with him, at least it was not you who paid for your place of residence.Â
You can tell Taehyungâs never lived here before because itâs actually quite nicely decorated inside. The ceilings are high and the sleek velvet curtains are pulled open, revealing a shimmering skyline. The furniture is modern and functional, and the whole damn place smells brand new. Youâve had the unfortunate pleasure of entering the place Taehyung lived in before now, and it looked nothing like this. The furniture was worn and stained despite the live-in maid, the house reeked of five hundred different spices that wafted from the kitchen to the living room, and the bookshelves were covered with comics, graphic novels, and old textbooks.Â
If it werenât for the fact that you and Taehyung are rich kids in their twenties that hate each other, you might have actually thought the place looked⌠homey.Â
You donât have time to be impressed by the interior design and architecture skills of whoever designed this place. Right now, all you can think about is tugging yourself out of your airtight reception dress and passing out on the nearest bed. Which, hopefully, will be as far away as possible from Taehyungâs bed of choice.Â
âHow many bedrooms does this place have?â You ask, shimmying along the floor so you donât trip over the hem of your dress. From the looks of it, you can see one giant hallway to your right and a massive, double-sided staircase leading up.Â
âEnough,â Taehyung grumbles in response. The hazy stupor from all of the fancy champagne is starting to wear off for the both of you, leaving behind two grouchy, begrudgingly-married individuals who want absolutely nothing to do with each other and have no problems making that known. Whatever golden light of the evening that was making Taehyung at least a little bit more attractive than usual has faded, and now you see him for what he really is: an unceremoniously tired man in a suit. âYou want upstairs or down?â
You gaze up at the marble staircase in front of you, then back down at your too-long dress. âDown.â The last thing you want is to trip in front of the man you have to see, every day, for the rest of your life.Â
âFine by me.â Taehyungâs halfway up the stairs by the time he turns back around to say something else. âIâll see you tomorrow, I guess?â
âYeah.â Thereâs no point in being hostile now. The both of you are too exhausted to mean anything by it. Besides, what else can you say? Everything to complain about has already been complained about. At least the two of you managed to wrestle out from your parents the stipulation that you would not be going on a honeymoon together. Now that would have been your worst nightmare. âIâll see you tomorrow.â
Itâs as good of a goodnight either of you are going to get. Taehyung heads up the stairs and disappears around a corner, and you start wandering down the hallway. All the bedrooms look the exact same other than different colors on the walls and bedsheets, but they all look serviceable to you. Clean. Empty. Far away from wherever Taehyung is.Â
You pick the one at the very end of the hall just to be as much of a diva as possible, and donât even bother drawing the curtains before tugging off your dress. Itâs past one in the morning, and youâre so high up you donât think anyone will be able to see you anyway. By the time youâve stripped naked and are tugging up the too-tight sheets tucked into the mattress, your legs are about to give out beneath you. The bed could be made of rocks for all you care. Anything to lie down on is fine by you.Â
Sleep comes fairly easily to you tonight. Once your head hits the pillow you can already feel yourself drifting off, eyelids fluttering shut, but you donât sleep quite yet. Not before you can think about how this is your life now, sleeping in a foreign bed in a foreign place with a foreign husband upstairs. This is what you will be living in now. Now and forever.Â
Living with Taehyung is, in both the best and worst ways possible, like living with a roommate that doesnât give a shit about the fact that they live with another person. Itâs good, because you and Taehyung hardly see each other and speak even less, which was pretty much the only thing you were asking for when it came to living with him. But it also sucks, because whenever you do happen to cross paths, Taehyung acts like you donât exist, barely sparing you a hello or even that tight-lipped smile you send to drivers on the road when they let you cross the street.Â
Not that the two of you ever engaged in energetic conversation before you got married. But at least the two of you would acknowledge each other, even if only to shoot a glare and a scowl the otherâs way from opposite sides of a hotel ballroom. Maybe itâs just because itâs him, but you did always find yourself actually relishing in those little interactions with Taehyung. In this strange, twisted way, it seemed to provide some sort of continuity to your ever-changing life. Like no matter what happened, at least you would know that the two of you would always despise each other.Â
To be frank, right now youâre not sure if Taehyung even remembers he got married at all.
Nights have been a lot more sleepless since your wedding day. After two weeks, the reality of it has finally started to settle in. This is your life now. And ever since you realized that, your bed has felt much less comfortable.Â
âBut the place is nice, right?â
You look around the living room from where youâre sat on the sleek, white suede leather couch, eyes glossing over the bookshelves, the floor-to-ceiling windows, the draping velvet curtains. From here, you can see the entire city skyline, flecks of gold from the windows of skyscrapers against a navy blue background. Slowly, as the moon creeps over the sky and the clock gets later and later, those lights will soon begin to flicker off, one by one.Â
âYeah, itâs not bad.â Nothing to write home about. That is, if home were a place other than here.Â
âThatâs good. At least you donât live in, like, a total dump or anything,â Victoria says on the other end of the line. âHowâs Taehyung?â
His name alone elicits this deeply-exhausted sigh from your lips, like itâs been ten years since you married and every day has felt worse than the last. âFine.â You canât really complain about anything yet, considering that you hardly ever see the man.Â
âJust âfineâ?â Victoria sounds skeptical.Â
âYeah,â you draw out the word, as if trying to convince yourself of its truth. âI mean, itâs like he doesnât even live here. I barely see him. And when I do, we donât even speak to each other.â
âThatâs good though, isnât it? You hate him.â Victoria says it like itâs the most obvious thing in the world. And in a sense, it kind of is.Â
âI meanâŚâ
âI know that your life hasnât exactly⌠gone the way you had planned, but isnât this your best case scenario when considering everything?â She asks. âIf Taehyung is as distant as you say he is, isnât it almost like you never married him in the first place?â
As if on cue, you hear footsteps coming down the stairs, heels clicking on the marble as they make their way to the entrance. You whip your head around to find Taehyung, all dressed up in loose, flowy slacks and a flowery silk button-down, strolling down the staircase as he scrolls through his phone, paying you zero attention whatsoever.Â
He notices you briefly when he reaches the bottom, meeting your eyes with his own. He offers this measly, unenthused half-smile your way before he grabs his wallet and some house keys from the table by the entrance, opens the door, and vanishes off into the night.Â
If you hadnât been in the living room, you probably wouldnât have even realized he left. Not that you being present as heâs planning on leaving would have stopped him anyway. This is the sixth night heâs done this in the past two weeks. You could stand by the door and stare him down as he emerges from his bedroom, all dressed up for something youâre definitely not invited to, and he would offer you that same goddamn smile and walk out the door without even blinking. Who he was before you got married and who he is now are no different. Not even a ring could change that.Â
âI guess,â you tell Victoria. At least Taehyung hasnât turned into a helicopter husband. âI donât know. Maybe I just wish that I didnât have to deal with him at all.â
Wish you could turn back time. Wish you could worm your way out of an arranged marriage before it was too late. Wish you could go back to the way things used to be.Â
You and Victoria talk for another couple of minutes before she regretfully has to end the call, citing both her beauty sleep and an 8AM meeting tomorrow morning as her reasons for hanging up. The moment you put the phone down, you sink back into the couch cushions, staring out the windows at the world below you.
Hereâs the deal. What Taehyung does in his free time is none of your business. But also, itâs totally your business, because you are his spouse. A spouse who is an equal amount in the public eye as he is. What he does and does not do has a direct impact on what you do and do not do.Â
Itâs no secret that when you catch Taehyung sauntering down the stairs looking like a Gucci runway model, itâs not because heâs planning on catching a movie with a college friend and then playing video games for four hours on a couch in a basement. He is going out. To clubs, to parties, to exclusive events that heâs been invited to by his equally-rich friends, all of whom are acting like heâs the same bachelor heâs always been.Â
And maybe thatâs the real problem with your whole marriageâother than the glaringly obvious issue that itâs a marriage wholly unwanted by the two parties involved in it. Despite the ring on his finger, Taehyung is going out and pretending that nothing in his life has changed while youâre trapped at home, desperate to save you and your familyâs reputation by keeping as low a profile as possible. You would give anything to march around the city all day, flashing middle fingers at paparazzi as you shop at your favorite high-end stores and frequent your favorite clubs. But you canât, because your familyâs fortune and influence is on the line.Â
And apparently, Taehyungâs isnât.Â
It sort of makes you wonder why it was even Taehyung you ended up marrying anyway. His family isnât any richer or more powerful than yours. Your spheres have always been sufficiently separate. What was it about him, and perhaps more importantly, his family that drew your parentâs eye? And what was it about marrying you that prevented him from saying no? Money? Prestige? Influence?
You suppose youâll never know. But whatever mystical force that convinced Taehyung to agree to this must not be as important to him as your reasoning is to you, because itâs become exceedingly apparent that Taehyung does not care that heâs married. He doesnât care about the ring on his finger, he doesnât care about his public image, and he most certainly doesnât care about you.
Perhaps you were naive for thinking this, but you actually believed marriage might tone him down a little. Might age him into a real adult with real world obligations. Instead, itâs only given you a firsthand look into who Kim Taehyung has been and always will be: a selfish rich kid.
You donât bother waiting around in the living room until he gets back, but you are still awake by the time you hear the door creak open. Taehyung makes no efforts to hide his return. You can hear him chattering loudly on the phone as he stumbles up the stairs, can tell from his gait alone that he is most certainly wasted. You donât want to know what he did tonight. Youâll probably be able to figure it out anyway when you wake up tomorrow morning and check your social media.Â
What were you thinking, marrying him? That he would change? That he would suddenly become someone that you could rely on? You had no choice when you said, âI do,â but you were at least hoping that maybe one day, one day in a long, long time, the two of you would finally see eye to eye. Maybe there would even come a time when you would genuinely love him. How foolish.Â
You close your eyes and try to imagine a world where you have married someone you love, someone who loves you back.
Not unlike the many nights preceding it, tonight is sleepless.Â
Unlike your marital status and general disposition, one thing that hasnât changed about you is your love for extravagant events. Call you conceited, but there is something so much fun about putting on a fancy, expensive dress that you love and getting your hair and makeup done before going to an exclusive gala and posing in front of five hundred cameras.Â
Actually, now that you think about it, maybe your wedding could have actually been pretty good, considering it let you do all those things. Itâs a real shame there happened to be a storm cloud in the form of Kim Taehyung there to ruin it. Otherwise, you think you would have rather enjoyed that day.Â
Tonight is the first event since your marriage where you and Taehyung are both required to show up and act like a happy married couple. Which would probably be a lot easier if you and Taehyung had exchanged more than ten words over the past two weeks. Maybe it was wishful thinking, but there was a part of you that thought you could use your arranged marriage to actually cultivate some sort of meaningful relationship between the two of you. So events like these wouldnât be such a drain on both of you.Â
When Kim Taehyung comes down the stairs, he actually doesnât look too bad. You donât know why this sort of thing keeps catching you off guardâlike you donât expect him to look that good whenever you see him. The problem is that you canât even chalk up the surprise to him wearing tailored clothes or having his hair done. He just looks⌠good.Â
Well, you suppose you do have to look at him every day for the rest of your life. Itâs a good thing heâs attractive. At least heâs not sore on the eyes.Â
Taehyung and his unfortunate attractiveness aside, the two of you donât say a word to each other as you join up at the entrance, grabbing any last-minute items like house keys, chapstick, and whatever dignity you have left to spare. You send forced smiles and tight nods each otherâs way in the elevator, staring straight ahead in the lobby of your building as the car pulls up to the front door.
By the time the two of you sit down in the back of the limousine, the built-up tension between the two of you is so thick youâre almost positive that even the chauffeur can feel it through the closed partition.Â
If you were any more idyllic, youâd probably spend the drive over to the gala staring out the window and imagining yourself in a different life, on a train to nowhere, flowers in your hair and a journal in your hands. Or perhaps youâd be the CEO of your familyâs company instead of having that responsibility passed down to a husband you donât even want, sitting in an office at the top of a skyscraper overlooking the city. Anything. Anything but this.
But the idyllic part of you died when you realized that fantasies like that are nothing but distractions and that daydreams are for romantics and optimists and losers.Â
âWhatâs our plan for tonight?â
Taehyung scoffs. âWhat do you mean, âwhatâs our planâ?â
You frown. âWell, weâre married, so we at least have to act like it, donât you think?â
âIsnât standing there and smiling enough?â Taehyung asks, an unimpressed eyebrow raised.Â
You bristle. Maybe that sufficed for your wedding, but there was so much going on it was easy to distract yourself from the gravity of it all. But this event is not about you. Itâs not even about either of your families. Itâs about someone the two of you are, at best, distantly connected to, through work, through fame, through power. Which means that though the focus will not be on you, there will still be eyes looking your way. Eyes watching your every move.Â
âDo you think it will be?â You challenge. Doesnât Taehyung realize that things are different now?
Taehyungâs lips curl downwards. âWhat do you expect us to do, shower each other in kisses? We donât even sleep on the same fucking floor.â
âMaybe I just expected you to act less like a stranger and more like a husband!â
Taehyung sighs. âDonât.â The word is clipped, short. âDonât tell me you actually want to be married.â
âI donât.â Itâs a response that you hardly have to think twice about. âBut we are, and nothing can change that.â Unfortunately. But itâs a fact that you and Taehyung have both had to grapple with over the past few weeks, and itâs becoming increasingly obvious that you are more aware of it than he is. If Taehyung could have his way, he would ignore you for the rest of his life and keep partying with the rest of his bachelor friends until he keeled over and died.Â
He huffs next to you, eyes staring straight ahead. You donât think the two of you have met each otherâs eyes in a week. Maybe more. Theyâre starting to feel as soulless as your marriage itself. âWhatever. What do you want me to do?â
âWhat do you think?â You cross your arms over your chest. âJust act like you donât hate me. Can you do that?â The way Taehyungâs behaving right now, you expect that will be a challenge for the both of you.
âOnly if you can. Iâll even hold your hand to prove that we love each other.â
âFine.â
âFine.â
The idea of holding Taehyungâs hand makes you want to implode. The mere thought sends shivers down your spine. But itâs better than nothing, and thatâs good enough for you. At least you wonât have to kiss.Â
The rest of the ride there is silent. You drive to this gorgeous mansion just outside the city, bathed in lights hidden amongst the bushes, illuminating both the architecture and the enormous fountain that sits in front of it. In a house this size, you imagine you could probably go your whole life without ever having to come across Taehyung. It actually makes you consider investing in a home that big.Â
Taehyung helps you out of the back of the limousine, a cold hand clasping your own as you rest your palm against his. You can feel the way his fingers hesitate as yours make to intertwine with his as you walk towards the entrance, smiling at whatever camera flashes you encounter on your way. If you didnât know any better, youâd think you were holding hands with a ghost.Â
The moment you step inside and are ushered out of the doorâs view, Taehyungâs grip relaxes on yours. For a moment, you think heâll actually spend the rest of the night like this, a gentle hand wrapped around yours, but then he pulls it away entirely and shoves it back into his pocket. Oh. You frown quietly to yourself. So thatâs how tonightâs going to go.Â
You donât make an effort to reach out towards him again.Â
For an event concerning people you donât know a damn thing about, everyone sure seems to know things about you. Other than greetings, you donât think anyoneâs said anything to you about anything other than your recent marriage to Taehyung. Every conversation is punctuated by a Congratulations! you do not feel that you have at all earned, considering you and Taehyung could barely look at each other on the way here.
Maybe Taehyung was right. All you really can do is stand there and smile.
âOh, donât tell me⌠Y/N, is that you?â
The champagne swirls around in the flute between your fingers as you turn towards the sound of your name, looking up to see a familiar face headed your way.Â
Kim Seokjin is nice enough. Heâs terribly handsome and got a flawless smile, but you know better than to trust those pearly whites of his. The sight of him alone is enough to make your body tense up. There was a reason you had explicitly told your parents not to invite him to your wedding.Â
âSeokjin, what a surprise to see you here,â you say, forcing a smile. âI thought you were supposed to be in Switzerland right now.â
âChange of plans,â Seokjin grins back in that awful, awful way, the kind of grin that makes you feel like heâs looking right through you. âI came back early. Itâs a shame, though, I missed your wedding.â
You shrug. âIt was a humble affair.â It wasnât. And youâre positive that Seokjin knows it wasnât an accident that you didnât extend an invitation to him or his family.Â
âAh, I see,â Seokjin says, nodding his head. He turns to Taehyung next to you, who is making no effort to hide how wholly uninterested in this conversation he is, and holds out a hand. âYou must be Kim Taehyung, then. Iâm Kim Seokjin. Congratulations on your wedding.â
Taehyung shakes his hand firmly, the air between the three of you growing unbearably palpable.Â
âSeokjinâs father is the VP of News Daily,â You explain, eyebrows raised as you try to signal to Taehyung what exactly it means when Seokjin is speaking to the two of you. âAnd his mother is a popular journalist for the cityâs post.â
Seokjin grew up in the world of media, and it seems heâs picked up his parentâs affinity for sticking their noses in places they donât belong. You know heâs not talking to the both of you out of the goodness of his heart.Â
Seokjin laughs, his hand waving away the mention of his parents. âOh, please. Thatâs them. Iâm just a bored socialite like the rest of you.â
You resist the urge to scoff.Â
âMarriage treating the two of you well?â He changes the subject to what he really wants to talk about: you.Â
âOf course,â you say quickly, preventing any hesitation on your end. Your empty hand reaches towards Taehyungâs, fingers searching for his between the two of you. But his refusal to join hands does not go unnoticed by you nor Seokjin, who is eyeing the space between your bodies with an eyebrow raised. âItâs just beenâwell, itâs just been difficult to adjust to a new life. Thatâs all.â
If you were to describe the face of a non-believer, it would be the exact expression on Seokjinâs face. âPerfectly understandable,â he says, that same toothy smile lacing his features. âBut it must be nice, you know, to marry someone you love.â
âI couldnât be happier,â you say, almost challenging Seokjin to say something even more inflammatory. He must know that all youâre trying to do at this point is save face. Love? Ha! As if.Â
âAnd Taehyung?â Seokjin motions to your husband.Â
You can feel the way Taehyung is stiffening beside you. âI suppose we are both lucky and unlucky in many ways when it comes to who we love.â
Itâs enough of an answer to get Seokjin off your tail. For now. He bids the two of you a tense goodbye before sauntering off to go poke his nose in someone elseâs business, fish for drama, a thread of a rumor he can pick apart with nimble fingers. You wonder if anybody actually likes him.Â
The moment he disappears from earshot, you grab Taehyungâs wrist tightly and pull him close to you. âWhat the hell was that?â You hiss into his ear.Â
âWhat?â You canât tell if heâs playing dumb or if he really is that dense.Â
âYou!â You exclaim. âKim Seokjin is the one person who could easily expose how fake this marriage is and you pull away from me? Right in front of him? You canât even hold my hand for two seconds, thatâs how much you hate me?â
âWho cares what he thinks?â Taehyung says. âHeâs just another media rat. No one will even remember we were here tomorrow.â
âBut if you keep acting like this, people will start to notice! Why canât you just act like you donât hate me, for one night? Is that so bad? Is it that torturous, to spend one night with me?â
âDo not turn this on me,â Taehyung orders harshly. âYouâre making a scene. Come on.â
You donât have time to shout at him for bossing you around like youâre a toddler throwing a tantrum before he drags you out of the venue, the two of you finding a back door to the building that leads outside. The cold air blows against your body, goosebumps popping up against your skin, but you find that the chilly night provides quite the respite after practically overheating indoors. Taehyung makes fire rush through your veins but at least the air can cool you back down.Â
Nevertheless, your conversation is not over. Itâs just been moved to a more private location.
âYou do realize that our marriage isnât going to suddenly go away, right? That weâre going to have to keep doing this for the rest of our lives?â You remind him, eyebrows raised. Thereâs a part of you that genuinely thinks heâs completely forgotten that your marriage is permanent.
âOh, and not holding hands for five minutes for this one event is totally going to change the course of our lives, isnât it?â Taehyung fights back.
âDonât act like you did the right thing,â you spit out. âYou donât have to pretend in front of me. I know you donât give a shit about our marriage.â
âWhat marriage is there to even give a shit about? Just because we had a wedding and signed some documents does not mean there is a real marriage between us. Look at us,â he motions between the two of you like itâs the most obvious thing in the world. âWe hate each other. Is this what you would call marriage?â
âBut at least Iâm trying to get past that!â You exclaim. âYou make it seem like being as miserable as possible is some sort of badge of honor. Do you actually want to spend the rest of your life hating the person you married? Or do you want to grow up and try and move on?â
Taehyung frowns. âWhat I want is for the person I married to stop acting like theyâre doing me such a huge favor by pretending to care about us. Especially when all they really care about is their familyâs goddamn reputation.â
âNo,â you tell him sternly. You are doing him a favor. He just canât admit that he actually needs help from you. âYou are putting zero effort into this. What am I supposed to do?â
âLet it go!â Taehyung shouts. âMaybe one day weâll actually start getting along, but right now itâs obvious that neither one of us can stand the other. I donât need you to do favors for me. I can handle it myself.â
You look away, rolling your eyes. âDoesnât look like it to me,â you mutter to yourself.Â
Taehyung cracks. âFine. You want me to pretend that I actually care about us? I will.â Thank God. Maybe now the two of you will finally start seeing eye-to-eye. âBut make no mistake about how I feel about you,â he spits. âGetting married to you ruined my life.â
You stare straight at him and his eyes are swirling, so obscured in the darkness of the night that you might even think he doesnât have a soul at all. His pupils bore into yours and for once, for once in your goddamn life, after so many years of staring each other down at debutante balls, so many years of witty refrains and snarky insults hurled each otherâs way, it feels like the two of you might actually snap.Â
Then, a camera flashes.
Trouble in Paradise! would be a suitable title for the front page of the cityâs biggest tabloid⌠if anything about your life with Taehyung could be considered paradise. Unfortunately for the both of you, that is not the case.Â
You donât need to keep reading the rest of the trashy article on the front page of the daily tabloid to know how much trouble youâre in, nor do you even have time to scroll beneath the terrible photo of you and Taehyung literally shouting at each other before you hear your phone ring.Â
You donât even bother saying hello to whoeverâs on the other end. You know itâll go in one ear and out the other.Â
âI assume you know why Iâm calling,â your motherâs harsh tone spits from the other end of the phone. Thereâs no doubt in your mind that sheâs standing in the middle of her office, snapping her fingers at her fifteen secretaries as they partake in the worst damage control your familyâs had to deal with since your cousin two years ago was caught with a mistress outside a high-profile restaurant.Â
âCan I take a wild guess?â Youâre about to be scolded into the next century, so you might as well enjoy your last few moments.Â
âDonât get cheeky with me,â your mother warns. âCare to explain why you and your beloved husband made the front page of the Daily Post today?â
âI know,â you sigh, a hand coming up to rub at your temples. Itâs eight in the morning, youâve barely looked at your phone, and you havenât even brushed your teeth yet. It feels like youâre still asleep, and most certainly lack the energy to deal with this right now.Â
Your mother, on the other hand, thinks otherwise. âYou know? You know, and you still go out and do this? For everyone to see?â
âWe tried to take our argument outside,â you begin to explain, but your mother isnât having a single word of it.Â
âThe fact that you thought it was even appropriate to have an argument in a public setting at all astounds me, Y/N. We raised you better than that.â Thereâs no need for you to even see her face. Youâve grown so used to that disappointed frown over the years that itâs burned into your brain.Â
âMaybe you should have thought about that before marrying me off to a man I barely know so I could be someone elseâs problem instead of yours,â you bite.Â
âWe did this for your own good,â she hisses back. âYou are married because we love you, and we want you to succeed outside of this family.â
âThen why do you care what the tabloids print about me?â
âBecause being married does not mean you are no longer a part of this family,â your mother informs you sternly, lips smacking together. âYour marriage reflects on all of us, and you know that. What will people think of us when they see how terribly behaved you are?â
âEveryone acts like that, and you know it.â How could your mother preach good behavior when everyone, everyone you know, is just as spoiled and entitled as you? Thereâs no such thing as being altruistic when it comes to people like you. Being genuine, and good, and pureâthat will get you ruined.Â
You can hear her breathing into the phone when your mother responds, âBut not in public, and that is the point. We expect better from you.â
âIf you were so worried about me behaving so badly, then why did you even marry me off anyway? You knew that I didnât want to. What did you think would happen?â Itâs a question you wouldnât have dared ask three months ago. Hell, even a year ago, when it was first revealed you were to be engaged, you wouldnât have dared open your lips. But things are different now. Youâre married to a man that hates you just as much as you hate him. He is making no effort to improve your relationship and seems hellbent on despising you forever. There is no way to get out of it. And if your parents really foresaw all of that, then what was the point in the first place?
âYour grandmother.â
Your mouth shuts.Â
âYou know she wanted to see you married before she passed,â your mother says, words clipped and biting and harsh. âShe cares about you. She wanted to make sure youâd be taken care of.â
âI donât need anyone to take care of me,â you mutter to yourself like a petulant child. In a way, you sort of are.
âIf you want to stay in her will, I suggest you change that mindset.â
You freeze in your tracks. The will?
âIs that a threat?â You ask, positively dumbfounded. Are you being coerced into staying in this marriage because of your grandmotherâs will?
You can hear your mother laugh, that muted, knowing chuckle of hers. âIt was the deal all along, remember?â
Vaguely, you do. You remember fighting your parents tooth and nail over getting married until your grandmother revealed it was her dream to see you wed. You remember the look on her old, wrinkled face, that soft, sad smile that said she knew she didnât have much time left. You remember agreeing, because how could you deny her? You remember her promising to remember what youâre doing for her.Â
âYouâre kidding.â
âIâm not.â
âButââ
âThatâs the end of this conversation, Y/N. You fix things with your husband or youâre out of her will. Sheâs made that clear. I expect youâll make the right choice.â
She hangs up.Â
Well.Â
There are a lot of ways to describe how youâre currently feeling, and you most certainly had an expensive education that would provide you with plenty of the vocabulary, but you think the most appropriate words for the current situation would be: youâre fucked.Â
At least the feeling is mutual.Â
Hardly two minutes after your motherâs brutal phone call, Taehyung comes storming down the stairs, hair still mussed from the night prior, his own phone clenched tightly between is fingers. Even from where you stand in the middle of the living room, you can see the way his eyes are glinting with anger, the veins popping out from his skin.Â
âI just got off the phone with my parents,â Taehyung begins, not even bothering to spare a âgood morningâ your way, âand they are fucking furious about last night.â
You shrug. âJoin the club,â you mutter, arms crossed in front of you. What, does Taehyung really think you got off scot-free?
âDonât act like this means nothing to you,â Taehyung says as he approaches you, footsteps calm despite his demeanor being anything but. âYouâre the one whoâs so obsessed with keeping up their familyâs perfect reputation. Youâre the reason weâre even in this mess in the first place.â
âWhat do you mean, âIâm the reasonâ?â You ask, astounded. Like heâs totally absolved of all blame and just an innocent third party. âYou are the reason we went outside. You are the reason we had that argument, because you refuse to accept the fact that weâre actually married and thereâs nothing we can do about it.â
âRight, because holding hands is really gonna show all those people how in love we are. I bet your parents are so thrilled right now.â Taehyung drawls.Â
âItâs a start!â You shriek. âGod, youâre just soâso infuriating! You canât accept that this was your fault, too. You just have to turn everything against me and you always, always have to get the last word. Itâs like you think youâll die if you donât.â
âLike youâre any better,â Taehyung huffs back. âYou think Iâm the villain because I donât want to pretend to be in love with someone Iâm not in love with. You act like us not holding hands is going to ruin our lives. It was one event! One! Itâs obvious we hate each other, so why even try?â
âWhat, do you expect me to just sit around and do nothing? To act like everythingâs fine? Like Iâm happy?â As if. This marriage is the worst thing thatâs ever happened to you. âWhile you prance around the city with your rich boy friends, going out to clubs and parties and pretending that I donât exist? Is that what you expect from me?â
Taehyung laughs, this loud, disbelieving sort of noise, like heâs never heard such nonsense before. âJust because weâre married doesnât mean the rest of my life has to change. Am I not allowed to enjoy myself with my friends? Or are you determined to keep me chained to your side for the rest of our lives?â
âWhat I want,â you punctuate every word, âis for you to stop acting like you havenât got stakes in this, too. You think I donât know how your family works? What being married to me means for you? Because I do. And I know that if we were to divorce, it would be you who would get the short end of the stick. Make no mistake.â
Thatâs enough to shut Taehyung up for a good few seconds. And it shuts him up, because he knows itâs true. Taehyungâs family may have a little more money, a little more power than yours, but youâve got a family intimately more connected with the media. One phone call and Taehyung may have a rather messy, rather public breakup to deal with.Â
âYou wouldnât,â he says, calling your bluff.Â
âAre you sure about that?â You say, sticking your ground. You would never really divorce him, of course, but he doesnât need to know that.
âI am,â Taehyung says firmly. âDonât think I donât know what being married to me is in it for you. What is it? Money? Power? Your fatherâs CEO position?â
âThatâs none of your business,â you snap quickly. Maybe youâre more transparent than you thought. Bristling, you straighten your shoulders and turn back to meet his eyes. âRegardless, it seems we both have a reason to stay in this marriage.â
âIt seems we do,â Taehyung agrees with a thin, contained smile. âThen I suppose we can reach some sort of agreement.â
âAs inâŚ?â Your interest in piqued.Â
âIâll stop going out with my friends if you stop picking fights with me all the time,â he says economically, like heâs killing two birds with one stone.Â
âOnly if you agree to also act more like my husband when weâre in public,â you tack on, because you just canât settle for anything less.Â
âPublic only,â Taehyung specifies.Â
You scoff. âLike Iâd even want to pretend to be your wife when weâre in private.â
âGood. It seems weâve come to a deal.â
âWhatâs in this for you, huh?â You prod, just to be annoying. Taehyungâs right. Thereâs a reason youâre not divorcing him the second you get the chance. But there must be a reason why heâs not doing the same thing.Â
âDoes it matter?â He challenges, a single eyebrow raised. âMy life is just as awful as yours.â
Fair enough.Â
âDo we have a deal?â Taehyung asks, holding out his hand, that sneaky, devilish grin lacing his features.Â
Taking his hand in yours and grasping it firmly is the easiest decision in the world. His palm presses against your own, hot hand meeting your cold skin, and it feels like the two of you are finally finding some sort of balance. You look up into his eyes, burn your gaze into his pupils, watch them glint in the white ceiling light of the living room.Â
âDeal.â
For two people raised on the values of reading the fine print and making educated choices when it comes to business deals, you and Taehyung sure havenât worked out any of the intricacies of the deal the two of you agreed to. Unlike those business deals your parents constantly agreed to, however, knowing all of the stipulations and provisions of your strange, strange agreement with Taehyung may prove more harmful than helpful.Â
Like right now.Â
âWait, we donât have to be by each otherâs side the whole night, do we?â Taehyung asks you, eyebrows furrowed in a knot, as you sit in the back of a big, black van on your way to a mutual friendâs twenty-first birthday bash.Â
âThere are going to be a lot of cameras there,â you respond.Â
âYeah, outside the entrance to the damn club. You know they wonât be allowed in, so who cares?â Taehyung rebukes.Â
You huff out a little sigh, not wanting to get into an argument when youâre literally minutes away from your first public appearance since the whole tabloid debacle from three weeks ago. You and Taehyung could both do with being a bit more relaxed than you normally are when youâre around each other.Â
âHasnât Clarissa invited hundreds of people? Theyâll all notice if we arenât together,â you remind pointedly. The girl whose birthday party you are attending is an heiress who grew up on the money of two people with a monopoly over the current artificial intelligence market and has millions of followers on social media. There will be notable people there. And people will know the two of you, as well.Â
Taehyung rolls his eyes. âThatâs the point, Y/N. Thereâll be so many people, no one will even care. Itâs her twenty-first birthday. Do you think people are going to be sober?â
You purse your lips together. Heâs got a point. âHow about when we are together, we hold hands. But if you see a friend or something then feel free to say hi.â Taehyung can be afforded that luxury. Especially because the chances of him not bumping into someone he knows is exceedingly low anyway.Â
Taehyung nods in agreement. âYou too. But I wonât leave you unless I know youâre with someone youâre close with.â
âYou donât have to stay, Iâll be fine,â you say with a small chuckle. What, is Taehyung suddenly worried, or something?
âYeah, but it would be in bad taste if I left you with someone you didnât know well. Or alone. Just wanna make sure youâre taken care of.â He shrugs nonchalantly, turning back to look out of the window on his side of the car.Â
âOkay.âÂ
You donât really have anything else to say to that. Youâre sure you can handle yourself if youâre left alone for a few minutes while Taehyung says hi, but you actually find yourself rather appreciative of his resolve to look after you. Or, at least, make sure someone else is looking after you. Itâs quite⌠chivalrous. Strikingly out of character for the Taehyung youâve become well-acquainted with over the past couple of months.Â
By the time you arrive, itâs obvious that Taehyung was right about there being so many people you two practically donât even exist. Other than the herds of camera crews waiting outside the joint, photographing everyone that steps out of a black car to see what theyâre wearing and who theyâve come with, no one seems to be paying you any attention. And in a way, that sort of nonexistence, that anonymity, itâs refreshing. Your entire life youâve felt like all eyes were on you, like there was constantly a spotlight above your head, but here, the party centers around someone else.Â
Despite that fact, Taehyung keeps his promise. He keeps himself pressed closely against you when thereâs not enough space for you two to stand side by side, and he makes sure to have a hand gently intertwined with your own as you weave your way through the dozens of bodies in the room. He doesnât say anything, of course, always looking up and forward instead of beside him, where you stand, but you find that youâre actually quite relaxed with his presence. He spots a bit of a clearing near the back of the first floor of the club, where a whole bunch of leather couches are pressed up against the brick walls, where the two of you can take a breather.Â
âDamn, Clarissa knows a lot of people,â you say when you finally settle down, happily plucking a martini from a tray held by one of the many caterers wandering through the venue.Â
âI doubt sheâs even spoken to half of them,â Taehyung comments. âShe and I have maybe spoken once⌠three years ago.â
âIt was enough to get you invited, wasnât it?â You point out with an eyebrow raised.Â
Taehyung nods, chuckling a little. âTouchĂŠ,â he says, clinking his own cocktail glass against yours.Â
You take a swig of the drink, letting it wash down your throat. Youâre not exactly sure how else youâre supposed to survive the night. âYou must enjoy this, huh?â You muse, looking up at Taehyung from where youâre seated on the couch. Heâs standing next to you, looking around the room with a distant gaze in his eye.Â
âEnjoy what? The drink? Itâs nice,â Taehyung says, having another sip.Â
âNo, I mean this,â you say, motioning toward the crowd. âThe clubbing, the dancing, the drinking. Iâll bet that if you could do this every day for the rest of your life, you would.â
âIâm honored that you think so highly of me,â he deadpans.Â
âJust making an observation,â you say, holding your hand up in surrender. âI mean, isnât this what you used to do every weekend before we got married? Get wasted and party? Wake up in someone elseâs bed the next morning? Muscle your way through the week just so you could do it all over again?â
Taehyung shakes his head, a knowing grin on his face. âLooks like someone keeps up with her tabloids. Let me guess, you would scroll through all of those trashy articles on your phone whenever you woke up so you could see what your future husband was doing?â
âI could have never even met you and I would know that thatâs exactly what you do,â you say, even though you definitely did do those things before your engagement was announced to the public. âYouâre a heartbreaker, Kim Taehyung. I donât need to read a tabloid to know that.â
âWell, you must be quite the lucky girl, then,â Taehyung comments. âYou seem to be taking up so much of my energy that I donât have the time for that anymore.â
You place a sarcastic hand on your heart. âI didnât know you were always thinking about me. Iâm touched.â
âDonât get used to it,â Taehyung huffs out, making the two of you both shake your heads as you chuckle to yourselves. First civil conversation youâve had with each other in a long while, even if there may have been a few blows exchanged.Â
The privacy doesnât last long. Soon after, a huge crowd of people that could honestly still pass for teenagers herds towards the back of the club, all of them wanting to take pictures with each other. You and Taehyung do your best to stay out of the way, but one of the girls recognizes him from the Elle photoshoot he did about a year ago and begins to strike up a conversation with the both of you about your recent marriage. If she was paying attention to anything the tabloids leaked three weeks ago, she doesnât mention it. Taehyung smiles and happily answers all of her questions, and even offers to take a picture of the group for them. The conversation ends before the two of you even catch her name.Â
Youâre standing by the line of buffet tables laid out against the staircase leading up to the second floor, no doubt as crowded as this one, when the opportunity for you to speak to someone other than Taehyung finally presents itself.Â
âY/N!â
Youâd recognize that voice anywhere. You turn around to see Victoria barreling towards the both of you, not even caring when she accidentally spills a bit of her piĂąa colada on the floor as she does.Â
âHey!â You exclaim excitedly. âI didnât know youâd be here.â
âAre you kidding? Iâm pretty sure Clarissa invited everyone on her, her best friendâs, her best friendâs cousin, and her best friendâs cousinâs dogâs contact list,â Victoria says with a laugh. âItâs nice to see you. I feel like youâve been holed up in that big olâ penthouse for weeks.â
âDamage control,â you remind her succinctly. Victoria knows enough that thatâs all the explanation she really needs.Â
âI donât know if the two of you have ever met formally,â you say, thinking back to your wedding, where Victoria spent most of her time schmoozing with your parents (who love her) and didnât even engage with any of the people who Taehyungâs family had invited. âTaehyung, this is Victoria. Victoria, Taehyung.â
âPleasure,â Victoria says in that loud, unabashedly forward way of hers, holding out a friendly hand. Taehyung smiles back curtly, taking her hand and shaking it gently, so as not to spill any more of her drink.Â
âMine as well. I remember you were at our wedding.â Oh? So he does know her?
âThat I was. Oh, I miss that day. The food was excellent. Tonightâs isnât too bad either. Hope youâre doing well, the two of you. Itâs nice to see you getting along,â she says, always the observer.Â
Taehyungâs eyes widen a little when he picks up what Victoria is not-so-subtly putting down, but you place a hand on his upper arm to calm him. âItâs okay,â you tell him. âShe wonât say anything.â
âMy lips are sealed,â Victoria adds.Â
âIf you wanna go spend time with some of your friends, you can,â you say, giving Taehyung a nudge. He looks positively helpless standing in between the two of you as Victoria out-extroverts him.Â
âAlright,â he says hesitantly, even though you know heâs already spotted at least ten people youâre sure heâd want to spend time with over you. âIâll come find you soon, okay? Donât go too far.â
You nod, and Taehyung disappears off into the crowd. Not two seconds later, you hear someone else call his name in a familiar tone.Â
âI thought you said you hated him,â Victoria points out as the two of you watch his caramel brown hair makes its way throughout the crowd.Â
You take another sip of your drink. âI do,â you say.Â
Victoria looks at you like youâve just told her youâve sworn off custard-filled doughnuts.Â
âWhat?â You ask, feeling suddenly defensive.Â
âNothing,â Victoria singsongs. âIt just doesnât look like that to me.â
âWe just need to keep up a good appearance in public, thatâs all. You know how mad my parents got when the tabloids leaked all that shit a few weeks ago,â you explain. Youâre not sure what all the fuss is about. Taehyung said he would do these things. And he did. That was him upholding his end of the deal. This is you upholding yours.Â
âIf you say soâŚâ Victoria says, not looking at all convinced. âI guess Iâm just surprised thatâthat you two seem to be getting along so well. Maybe you being married isnât going to be the worst thing after all.â
You stare back out into the crowd, scanning the top of peopleâs heads for Taehyungâs familiar locks. In the dim light of the club, you have a difficult time finding his, squinting your eyes slightly as you look around, but eventually you spot him, dancing happily with some old friends of his you recognize. He looks like heâs having a good time. And that makes you feel like maybe, just maybe, this might end up alright.Â
âYeah,â you say, though with the pounding of the bass and the alcohol already rushing through your veins, it doesnât really feel like your voice belongs to you. You look back at Taehyung, knowing exactly where he is now, and you smile. Just a little. âI guess heâs not so bad.â
You never do get a chance to meet Taehyungâs friends that night. By the time he joins back up with you and Victoria heâs by himself, a little more drunk than when he left, and ready to go home. And for once, instead of fighting him, instead of insisting you stay an hour more just to make sure youâve done all of your rounds, you let him take you home.Â
Taehyung has been spending a lot more time at the penthouse lately. Perhaps his familyâs business happenings are slow, or perhaps heâs actually starting to get more comfortable with inhabiting the same space as you, but he has definitely found himself quite the rhythm in that house of yours. He even comes down to the first floor rather regularly.Â
When heâs home, Taehyung is a lot quieter than you thought he would be. Granted, you donât exactly know what you were expecting in the first place, but it certainly wasnât him ruminating in one of the home offices while the Beatles play softly on the stereo, nor was it him reading a book in French in one of those big old grandfather chairs in the living room. If you didnât know any better, youâd probably think he was still absent in that old way of his, ghostlike and silent, like he was occupying the space instead of truly living in it.Â
But you do know better, and even though Taehyung is just as noiseless as he used to be, the house already feels a little bit fuller.Â
Perhaps the reason youâve become so keenly aware of his presence over the past few days is because of the notable fact that Taehyung has indeed held up his end of the deal, and no longer goes out with his friends in the evening. Or at all, for that matter. Which strikes you as rather odd, because heâs the epitome of a social butterfly, a thousand contacts in his phone and a whole group of friends he regularly spends time with. Maybe his parents told him to tone down the public appearances, too. And thatâs understandable, but donât they know Taehyung? Canât they see how much he thrives on social interaction? It almost makes you feel⌠bad for him.Â
To remedy this, you suggest he invite over his friends. Just for a few hours, you swear you wonât mind.Â
âSeriously?â Taehyung looks positively shocked when you tell him he can, standing in the doorway of the office he seems to have designated as his own.Â
âYeah, why not?â You say with a carefree shrug. Besides, youâve never met his friends anyway, and now seems as good a chance as any to introduce yourself. You are his wife, after all. âUnless your parents say you canât. But itâs not a problem for me.â
âYou⌠donât mind if I have my friends over for a bit? Honest to God, weâre probably just going to play FIFA for three hours straight,â Taehyung says like itâs some sort of warning. Like the idea of him and his buddies from college are going to sit in the living room screaming at the television, leaving you alone to do literally anything else, is somehow bad.Â
You laugh. âItâs fine, really. Call them. Iâd actually quite like to meet them.â
Taehyung picks up his phone almost instantly, as if youâll change your mind in the next five minutes so he better get them over soon, and already you can see the way his face is lighting up, the way his eyes crinkle as he chats to his friends and the way his lips curl upwards when they crack a joke back. Isnât it obvious? He feeds off of the energy of others. Who are you to deny him such a simple pleasure?
As it turns out, Taehyungâs friends actually end up being quite nice anyway.Â
He invites over three, because four people is apparently the perfect number for a hardcore game of FIFA on his Playstation, and they are all very handsome men you have never met before. You suppose like attracts like, after all.Â
âYou must be Y/N,â says the first one you see when you open the door to let them in. He doesnât look a day over twenty-oneâin fact, he could probably still pass as a college studentâand has rather long dark hair that drapes over the sides of his face, covering the edges of his big doe eyes. âIâm Jungkook. This is Jimin and Hoseok.â
âNice to meet you all,â you say, stepping aside so they can enter.
The shortest one, Jimin, grins in response, and Hoseok, behind him, gives you a wave. Itâs refreshing enough as is, not having to exchange formal greetings and shake each otherâs hands like you do with everyone else. Hoseok even gives you a bit of a nod, too.âYou, too,â he says. âWeâve heard so much about you.â
Oh, have they, now? Interesting.Â
âAll good things, I hope,â you say awkwardly, forcing a small smile as Taehyung comes bounding into the room, ears perked up at the sound of his friendsâ voices.Â
âDefinitely. Thanks for having us over. We didnât wanna intrude on the sanctity of your new place,â Jungkook says, gesturing vaguely to the house as a whole. Heâs got this excellent, genuine grin on his face, the kind that people who are just happy to be alive always wear.Â
Already heâs said enough to charm the shit out of you. Who knew Taehyungâs friends could be so⌠friendly? âPlease, youâre welcome any time. I was just thinking Taehyung was getting a little lonely.â
âThere he is!â Jimin shouts excitedly when he spots Taehyung behind the two of you, looking a lot more casual than he normally does when heâs alone with you, having abandoned his usual silky button-down and wide-leg slacks for a loose shirt and some sweatpants. You didnât even know he had those things in his closet.Â
âHey, everyoneâs here!â Taehyung exclaims, just as happy. He squeezes past you to give the three of them a big hug, and it almost makes you feel like youâre intruding on something you shouldnât be in. Even though this is literally your house.Â
âNice place you got here,â Hoseok comments, eyes drifting around the living room. âVery minimalist, I like it.â
âSure hope you donât spill anything on those nice leather couches of yours,â Jungkook says.Â
âYeah, unlike Kook, who has spilled tomato soup on every shirt heâs ever owned,â Jimin jokes, earning laughs from Taehyung and Hoseok and a punch from Jungkook.Â
âMoved after we married,â Taehyung says simply, shrugging his shoulders. Itâs an easy enough explanation for why it doesnât look at all lived in. Hereâs hoping none of them realize you sleep in different bedrooms.Â
âYeah, congratulations on that, man,â Hoseok says, giving Taehyung a celebratory nudge in the shoulder. âWhoâd have thought, out of the four of us, Kim Taehyung would be the first one to settle down.â
The way Taehyungâs body tenses up at that comment does not go unnoticed by you.Â
âSeriously, I would have never guessed,â Jimin adds on. âYouâre showing us a new side of yourself, Tae. But Iâm happy for you.â
Normally, youâd probably take offense at such blatant insinuations that your husband was a former playboy, especially from his equally noncommittal friends. But truthfully, itâs not like you were blind to Taehyungâs transgressions either. And what matters most is the fact that since it was announced publicly, you are the only woman heâs been seen with since your engagement.Â
âMe too. You seem to really like her. Iâm glad,â Jungkook pipes up, sending a smile your way. You definitely feel like you donât belong in this conversation. âI think the two of you will be good for each other.â
âYeah, I hope so,â Taehyung says with a nervous chuckle. His eyes quickly shoot your way, the two of you meeting gazes, your hesitant expressions matching. At least the two of you are on the same page. âAlright, alright, enough,â Jungkook says. âWhoâs ready to get their ass kicked in FIFA?â
âYouâre on, Jeon. But when I win, you owe me a five-star dinner,â Hoseok challenges.Â
âDeal.â
Hoseok, Jimin, and Jungkook immediately crowd towards the couch, and you take that as your cue to leave. But before you can disappear down the hallway, you and Taehyung look awkwardly at each other, hands tied. Itâs not like you can say anything to them.Â
The truth is that, sometimes, itâs easy to forget that not everyone else knows that your marriage is just for business. Sometimes itâs easy to forget that there are still people out there that believe you marry for love.Â
Isnât it crazy to think that you used to be one of those people, too?
âHey,â Taehyung says when you meet up at the bottom of the stairs again.Â
âHey,â you respond.Â
âYou look nice.â
You scoff a little to yourself. What, are you exchanging compliments now? âThanks,â you say, looking him up and down. âYouâre not so bad yourself.â Like he ever is.Â
âI knew you had taste,â Taehyung teases, and itâs the sort of comment that would have earned him a melon ball to the face back when the two of you were teenagers at a debutante ball, but today only earns him a roll of your eyes as you join hands. You donât have anything big tonightâjust a small dinner to celebrate some sort of business accomplishment for your family, which means that all you have to manage is not ending up in some sort of food fight by the end of the night.Â
âI didnât have a choice, did I?â You retort easily as you get into the car.Â
You donât normally speak a lot on the way to events. Not that you ever did, but even as your relationship has slowly faded from pure hatred to attempts at compromise, you both seem to relish in being able to stare out of your respective backseat windows and into the city that surrounds you. Just out of curiosity, about halfway through the ride you look towards Taehyung to see what heâs up to, and find yourself genuinely surprised to see him leaning against the window with his eyes closed. Is he sleeping? A couple more minutes of gazing at him tells you he is, because his body has gone lax and his breathing has evened out, soft snores leaving his mouth. This ride canât be longer than twenty minutes. Has he not been sleeping well? Up in that enormous second-floor bedroom of his?
Heâs awake by the time the car parks outside the restaurant, this fancy name brand steak place that was chosen solely because the biggest beneficiaries of your familyâs new business deal are two sixty-year-old men whose entire diet consists of beef and beer. No cameras tonight, just a small family affair. You and Taehyung hold hands as you enter the restaurant and are led to the private room in the back anyway.Â
You and him are seated on the far end of the long, rectangular table, alongside all of the other adult children dragged along to celebrate something that has no effect on their lives. But itâs nice, because the space alone prevents your parents from actively speaking with you, and you and Taehyung can stay in your own little bubble, only chiming in for a toast when necessary.Â
âWhat are you going to get?â He asks you, the two of you gazing at the menu. No matter how fancy this place is, all the options seem to boil down to steak, steak, steak, steak, and caesar salad. Classic.Â
âOh, so you actually care now?â You counter, an eyebrow raised in amusement.Â
Taehyung laughs. âArenât I supposed to?â
You narrow your eyes at him suspiciously, wise to his usual shenanigans. Itâs hard to tell if Taehyung really means what he says, or if itâs all for show. But perhaps heâs asking because heâs genuinely curious, since no one else seems to be paying you any attention.Â
âThe choices on this menu are simply overwhelming,â you say, motioning to the six options in front of you.Â
âI know, Iâm so torn,â Taehyung jokes, making you huff out a little giggle. At least heâs still got that same sense of humor.Â
You both end up going for a pretty classic steak dinner, which neither of the two of you finish because the damn portions are the size of your head. Dinner is, in and of itself, absolutely mindless, all of your parents talking about things that donât concern you whatsoever, leaving you and Taehyung to your own devices as you desperately try to make the night go by faster.Â
At one point, you notice Taehyungâs foot brushing up against yours, the leather of his loafers brushing against the toe of your patent heel. Thinking someone of it, you push back, foot nudging his back to his own chair. Itâs not a second later that Taehyung retaliates, the two of you dancing around each other underneath the table.Â
If the two of you were any younger, or perhaps any less resigned to your fate, thereâs no doubt in your mind you would be attempting to get Taehyung to fall off his chair in an effort to do the same to you. Footsie means war. But when the both of you know that, at the end of the day, youâll still be going home to the same place, and waking up the next morning in the same house, it doesnât feel like this is a battle.
Itâs just life.Â
Eventually, you meet Taehyungâs eyes with a hesitant smile, shoe pressed against his, stuck in ceasefire. And for once, he doesnât have that devilish look in his eye, that smug little grin on his face that tells you that heâs going to make you regret whatever it is you just did. Heâs just smiling back at you, all pink lips, having found real fun in the little things.Â
And that makes you happy.Â
The rest of the dinner is uneventful, which, in your book, is about as good as a dinner can go. You cheers to the future of your parentsâ relationship with their newfound partners and say a quick goodbye to them both, hurrying out of there before they can ask you any questions on your relationship with your husband. But you donât spend the car ride in silence on the way back.Â
Instead, you say, âHave you been sleeping well?â
The question seems to catch Taehyung off guard. He was already getting in position to take a power nap on the ride home, head pressed up against the window of the car.Â
âWhat?â
âHave you been sleeping well?â You repeat. âI noticed you fell asleep on the way here.â
âHuh? Oh, yeah, I guess,â he says, a hand scratching the nape of his neck. âI mean, itâs been hard adjusting, I suppose. But Iâll get over it.â
Hard adjusting? Youâve been together for nearly three months now. Three months worth of sleeping in the same penthouse bedroom, on the same soft-as-a-cloud mattress, underneath the same weighted blanket. And heâs still having trouble?Â
âOh. I mean, I just wanted to ask because you seem really tired lately.â
âI got a lot on my plate, what can I say,â Taehyung says with an empty smile, forcing a chuckle. âIâll be fine, seriously. You donât have to worry about me.â
âIsnât that my job?â You remind him. âI am your wife.â
Taehyung doesnât say anything to that. He just lets out an audible breath, the kind you let out when youâre amused and have something snarky to say, but donât have the energy to get the words off your tongue.Â
The rest of the ride is pretty quiet.Â
When you get home, you place your house keys in the bowl by the entrance and take off your shoes, just about ready to take a hot shower and collapse in bed, when Taehyungâs voice stops you.Â
âHey,â he begins, almost hesitantly. You look back at him inquisitively. âI was thinking, maybe, if you wanted, we could start sleeping in the same bed?â
You scrunch your nose up. Not in disgust, but in surprise. In bewilderment. What brought this on, all of a sudden?
âReally?â You ask, because you canât help yourself. âI thought we liked the separate bed thing. Gives us privacy.â
âYeah,â Taehyung says with a shrug, âbutâI donât know, itâs stupid. I just thought, you know, since weâre married and all. And itâs been three months.â He looks about two seconds away from backtracking, from shaking his head and going upstairs before you can say anything else.Â
âAlright,â you say quickly, nodding your assent. Taehyungâs eyes widen when he hears the word, like he had completely expected you to shut him down the moment he made the suggestion. âIf thatâs what you want. We can try it.â
âYou sure?â He asks, that same hesitant smile from earlier lacing his features. Itâs strange. He almost looks⌠sweet. Nervous.Â
You grin back at him. âYeah, I am.â
Taehyung lets you grab some of your toiletries and your pajamas from your designated bedroom before you head up the stairs together, towards the bedroom heâs claimed for himself. Funnily enough, this is the first time youâve been in his room. Three months of living together and you havenât dared step foot on the second floor.Â
You donât know what you were expecting when he opens the door to let you inside. Maybe a room that screamed âTaehyungâ a little more than this one does. One that looks like an actual human has been living here. But other than one of his classic silk button-downs draped over a chair, thereâs not a shred of evidence someone has actually been sleeping here. You could honestly be fooled rather easily that the shirt, too, is just decoration.Â
âYou can pick a side,â Taehyung says casually. He grabs his own sleepwearâan old t-shirt and some sweatsâand heads into the bathroom to change.Â
You wonder why Taehyung has had such a difficult time adjusting. This room is about as lavish as a bedroom can get. And yet.Â
Sitting down on the left side of the bed, you begin to remove your own clothes, unzipping tonightâs dress and stepping quickly into your pajamas, hurrying to make sure Taehyung doesnât catch you half-naked. How funny is that, you think to yourself. Youâve been married for three months and you still canât bear the thought of Taehyung seeing you without a shirt on.Â
When Taehyung comes out of the bathroom, hair all messy and clothes all casual, he grins lazily to himself. âI sleep on the right anyway,â he comments mindlessly.Â
Within twenty minutes the both of you are about as ready to pass out as you have ever been, the only lights still on the ones on your respective nightstands.Â
âGoodnight,â Taehyung says, reaching an arm over to switch his off.Â
âGoodnight,â you tell him, turning off yours as well. And all of a sudden, the room is shrouded in darkness.Â
You fall asleep instantly.Â
When Taehyung wakes up the next morning, the first thing he says to you is that he hasnât slept that well in ages.Â
âYou slept together?â Victoria shrieks, so loud you actually have to move your phone away from your ear as you punch in the code inside the elevator for access to your floor.Â
âWe did not sleep together,â you emphasize. âOkay, well, we sleep together, as in, in the same bed. But we are fully clothed. And not the slightest bit interested in doing anything other than sleeping.â
âI thought you said you liked having your own space,â Victoria points out. âWhen was the first time youâuhâŚâ she pauses to find the right words, âshared a bed?â
âA couple weeks ago. Itâs really not so bad, I donât know why youâre so hung up over it,â you say, lips pursed. You squeeze the phone between the side of your head and your shoulder, hands full of shopping bags, the string of the handles burning your skin. Maybe you should look into getting a personal shopper.Â
âIâm hung up over it because, for the longest time, you have sworn off Kim Taehyung. Called him dead to you. Insulted him every chance you get.âÂ
You scoff. You donât need reminding of how much you hated him, how much you canât believe you have to spend the rest of your life with him. âItâs different now. Weâre married. And he said he wasnât sleeping well. I felt bad.â
âHe wasnât?â
âEnough about him,â you say, shutting her up. You donât feel like talking about him with Victoria anymore. âWord through the grapevine says that your parents are actually thinking of letting you start your own company?â
Itâs enough to distract Victoria. For the rest of the ride in the elevator, she talks animatedly about a new streaming service her parents are considering letting her launch, under their parent business, of course, but itâs her own company nonetheless. And youâre proud of her. Proud she could do something your parents would never dream of letting you do. Proud she could make that happen.Â
You push open the front door with the side of your hip after entering in the security code, phone still snug between your ear and your shoulder, when you hear Taehyung call out your name.Â
He comes into view from the kitchen, which surprises you because you have, on multiple occasions, made fun of how much of a disaster chef he is, especially because heâs admitted to you heâs not a very good cook.Â
âI made brownies,â he says, holding out a plate of the chocolate treats in front of you. Instinct has you dropping your bags on the floor by your feet and reaching out, but you eye him first, suspicious.Â
âI have to go,â you tell Victoria, hanging up before she even gets a chance to object to your sudden departure. âYou made these?â
âYes, I did,â Taehyung says, rather proud.Â
âAnd the kitchen is⌠still standing?â You ask, skeptical.Â
Taehyung frowns at you, clearly unimpressed. âHow bad of a chef do you think I am?â
âPretty bad,â you admit with a shrug.Â
Taehyung pouts sadly to himself for a moment. âThese are good, I swear. Nothing weird in them like vegetables or anything either. I used a box mix.â
âNo wonder they look so nice,â you comment snidely, hesitant hand reaching out to grab one. They feel like brownies. So thatâs good.Â
âHey, I was the one who had to crack the eggs and shit. Three eggs! And not one eggshell in the bowl!â Taehyung says, clearly very pleased with himself.Â
You laugh at his enthusiasm, taking a bite. Itâs good. And exactly what you needed after a long day of shopping. âIâm proud of you. They taste good.â
âI knew you wouldnât doubt me.â Taehyung grins.
âTheyâre really good, actually,â You amend, genuinely surprised. And the best part is that you can count at least ten brownies left on that plate, which means that you get at least five more. Which, if you had any less self-restraint, you would probably eat all at once within the day.Â
âIâm glad you like them. Theyâre all for us, you know. No one else to share them with,â he says.
âHonestly, Iâm probably going to finish them by tonight. Youâll have to make more tomorrow,â you say sheepishly.Â
âWe can make some together,â Taehyung suggests.Â
âIâm looking forward to it,â you respond. The words come off your mouth easily, tumbling from your lips without you having to think about it. You arenât saying them because you have to. Youâre saying them because you want to. Because baking with Taehyung doesnât actually sound too bad. Especially if it means more brownies.Â
âYouâve, uh, youâve got something,â Taehyung says, gesturing vaguely to the side of his lip.Â
âOh, I do? Yikes,â you say, a little embarrassed. Your hand comes up to wipe at the left side of your mouth. âIs it gone?â
âWait, here, let me do it,â Taehyung says, reaching out towards you. He presses his palm against the side of your face, cradling your cheek and jaw in his enormous hands, and all at once it feels like your skin is on fire.Â
Your body freezes up at the touch, at the way his thumb swipes at the corner of your mouth, right against your lips, wiping away nothing but a goddamn brownie crumb. You look at him, look right at him, how can you look anywhere else when heâs right in front of you like this, and it feels like you are caught in his gaze, a rain droplet trapped on a web, a bee stuck in its own honey. His big, brown eyes sparkle from the ceiling lights, a chocolate sky that mirrors the food he just made for you. He looks at you and his eyes are so soft, so open, so happy to be looking right back at you. God.Â
âThere,â he says, a moment too late.Â
âThanks,â you stammer out, speechless otherwise.Â
You both stand there, looking at each other, wordless expressions drawn all over your faces, no idea what to do next.Â
After a while, Taehyung breaks the silence. âDo you wanna order takeout tonight?â
âOkay,â you nod, still a little breathless. Taehyung smiles before retreating back to the kitchen, leaving you standing in the entranceway, shopping bags abandoned by your side.Â
You look over to where heâs vanished. Thereâs a part of you that wishes he hadnât left. A part of you that makes you want to see him again.Â
Phone calls from your mother are never good. The last time she called⌠well, you know how that went. So when you see her contact information light up your home screen, itâs only instinct that you feel your heart rate spike.Â
âHello?â The voice that comes out doesnât even sound like yours.Â
Thereâs no good way to put what comes next. Your grandmother has died. Heart attack. The paramedics got there too late. It was over before it even started.Â
For a moment, for a split second, it feels like everything is frozen. Like the world has come to standstill. Your motherâs voice echoes in your ears, suspended in time, the words turning into stone as they crash onto the floor. And when they do, it is as if everything comes back to life.Â
Truth be told, you donât know how long you stay there, sitting on the edge of the left side of the bed, your phone resting lifelessly in the palm of your hand. It feels at once like an eternity and only a second in time. You spoke to your grandmother two days ago. You had promised that you and Taehyung would visit her soon. How can this be happening?
Your phone buzzes relentlessly in your hands, condolences pouring in from every person in your contacts, sorryâs and heart emoticons and If you need anything, Iâm always hereâs filling up your screen. Thereâs a part of you that vaguely registers your mother, alongside some of the other members of your family, trying to call you. But nothing can seem to shake you.Â
Untilâ
âY/N? You still up here?â
You hear Taehyung before you see him. Hear his voice, hear his footsteps, hear the door creak open as he enters your bedroom. Slowly, almost sluggishly, you twist around to look at him, the mere act knocking the wind out of you. Or maybe you were already breathless.Â
âHey, you alright?â Taehyung knows instantly that something is wrong.Â
âMy grandmother died.â The words sit heavy on your tongue. Thereâs no point in not telling him. Heâll find out soon enough. Heâs⌠heâs family, isnât he?
âWhat?â Taehyung freezes in place. âIâIâm so sorry to hear that, Y/N. Are you okay?â
âIâm fine,â you say, voice weak but steady. You blink up at him, once, twice, three times, and then suddenly you feel tears running down your cheeks.Â
Taehyung doesnât say anything else. He rushes to your side and sits himself down on the bed next to you, arms wrapping around your body. And you donât think about the fact that itâs him, about the fact that this is the closest the two of you have ever been. You just let yourself be engulfed in his frame, let yourself be enveloped in his hold as the tears stream down your skin, little hiccups jolting your throat. You close your eyes and press yourself into his arms, head resting against his chest, and wish so desperately that so many things about your life were just a little bit different.Â
It must be at least five minutes before either one of you dares to move. Your phone begins to rattle incessantly, that familiar and insistent buzz that the both of you are hard-pressed to ignore.Â
âI think you should answer that,â Taehyung whispers into your skin, lips right by your forehead.Â
âYeah,â you sniffle, sitting up next to him and wiping the remnants of wetness by your eyes. Well, Taehyungâs seen you cry. Thereâs no going back now. âYouâre probably right.â You look down at the phone. Itâs your father.Â
âIâll be downstairs, okay? Unless you want me to stay,â he offers, looking hesitant.Â
You shake your head. âNo, itâsâitâs okay. Iâll be fine.â
âCall me if you need me,â he makes you give him a nod of understanding before he finally gets up, hands slowly removing themselves from your skin, leaving little sparks in their wake. Remnants of warmth. Suddenly, you feel much colder. Hardly a minute later heâs out of the room, and you can hear his distant footsteps as they make their way down the stairs.Â
Sighing, blinking, and swallowing all at once, you pick up.Â
The call passes by in a blur. Your father says the will will take at least half a year to be executed, but that the funeral is already being planned. Your grandmother had hoped you would eulogize her. You agree, but you have no idea what you will say. He says Taehyung is invited but does not need to come if he cannot make it. He says a lot of other things too, about your mother, about your cousins, about your aunts and uncles and your poor grandfather, who passed five years ago, but you canât even remember them moments after heâs said them.Â
When he hangs up, the tears on your cheeks have dried, patches of them left along your skin. You head to the bathroom, getting off your bed for the first time that day, and try to wash away everything that has stained the morning. A part of you doesnât even want to bother, just wants to slug downstairs and eat as much sugary cereal as you can get your hands on, but you canât go down there looking like this. Looking so helpless.Â
By the time you reach the kitchen, Taehyung is already standing there, on the opposite side of the counter island, a big stack of pancakes in front of him. They look mouth-watering.Â
âHey,â he says softly. âThought you might want something to cheer you up.â
âDid you make these?â You ask, a little endeared. That was thoughtful of him.Â
âYeah. Theyâre still warm,â Taehyung says. He holds out a fork.Â
You grin.Â
The funeral is a week later. It sucks in every way that something can suck. But not in the same way your wedding sucked, or even the announcement of your engagement. It sucks because itâs a funeral, because you have to stare down your grandmotherâs casket when a part of you still doesnât even believe that sheâs gone. Because everyone there is so sad, so melancholy, dressed in all black and looking down at their feet. Because everyone is so sorry for you, so sorry for your loss, everyone has nothing but condolences to offer you. What will those do? They wonât bring her back. They wonât change things. They wonât make you feel even the slightest bit better.Â
Taehyung comes. He comes because he offers, and because you want him to. You want someone whose hand to hold. Want someone to smile at you when youâre speaking in front of your entire extended family and trying not to cry. You want someone who is familiar, and warm, and there for you.Â
And most of all, you want someone who wonât keep the conversation going when you get home.Â
âDo you wanna order Chinese?â He asks, coming into the living room, where you have been sulking on the couch ever since you stepped foot inside the door.Â
âThat sounds nice,â you force out.Â
âOkay. Your usual?â
âYes, please.â You donât bother asking how Taehyung already remembers what you like to order when youâve only gotten Chinese twice in the last three months.Â
âIâll call them.â He disappears off into the kitchen.Â
What you do appreciate about Taehyung is how he has defaulted to food as a comfort measure, and how the thought alone genuinely brightens you up a little bit. You donât know each other very wellâstill, after three months, you couldnât even say his favorite colorâbut he is doing his best, and he is trying his hardest. In some ways, you were unlucky to marry him. To marry someone you didnât love. To be forced into a union you had no say in, with someone you had so much antagonistic history with.Â
But in some ways, your luck has changed. In some ways, marrying him was perhaps the best thing that could happen to you. Taehyung is snarky, a little devilish, and absolutely full of himself, but he is not thoughtless. He is not heartless. He has proven that he is willing to put in the work. That he can grow to care. To change. To compromise. And isnât that the luckiest thing you could have gotten?
âIâm sure youâre probably sick of hearing people tell you theyâre sorry for your loss.â
His voice breaks your reverie, carrying throughout the wide open space of your living room. Heâs grinning honestly where he stands, slowly making his way over to you.Â
âKind of, yeah,â you admit. âItâs not going to bring her back. Most of those people probably donât even mean it.â
âDonât say that,â Taehyung says, sitting down next to you. âIâm sure they do.â
You look at him skeptically.Â
âI mean, theyâre sorry for your loss because that loss is causing you pain. And that sucks,â Taehyung explains, albeit a little less eloquently than you thought he would. âI know it sucks for me.â
âWhat do you mean?â
âI donât like seeing you sad,â Taehyung says honestly, shrugging to himself.Â
You scoff a little to yourself. âI would have thought my downfall would be the exact thing the great Kim Taehyung would wish for himself.â
âMaybe a couple of years ago.â
You narrow your eyes.Â
âOkay, maybe even a few months ago,â Taehyung admits with a laugh, making you smile, ever so slightly. âBut itâs different now. I like it when youâre happy. When youâre snarky and funny and a little evil. Seeing you like this⌠I donât like the way it makes me feel.â
âThatâs called empathy,â you point out.Â
âIâm trying to tell you that seeing you sad makes me sad, stop being a smartass,â Taehyung chides, and that really makes you grin. âThere. Thereâs that smile I was looking for.â
âYouâre so annoying,â you say, even though thereâs no malice behind it. You give him a little push, palms of your hand pressing lightly against his shoulder as you roll your eyes.Â
âOnly for you,â he promises. He manages to grab a hold of your wrist as your hand meets his torso, pulling you into him as he wraps an arm around your torso. You gasp a little at the sensation, head falling against his body, fitting snugly in the crook of his neck. He gives your side a comforting rub. âIâm sorry today was so shitty.â
âIt was,â you agree. âBut Chinese food will make it a little bit better.â
Taehyung looks positively scandalized. âWhat? âChinese food will make it betterâ? But not your loving, doting husband?âÂ
You pretend to think for a little bit, tilting your head up to the sky as you tap your chin with your finger. âOkay. Maybe that, too,â you cave after a bit of waiting, just to be extra bothersome.Â
âThatâs what I thought,â Taehyung says proudly, looking down at you, eyes sparkling. You can feel his grip tighten as he presses you against his body, letting you rest your head on his side. It feels like the longest hug ever, like youâre wrapped up in a weighted blanket. Only itâs not a blanket. Itâs Taehyung. Itâs your husband.Â
Heâs your husband.
âTomorrow will be better,â he says, and it sounds a lot like a promise.Â
You nod against him, letting your eyes drift shut. Things are pretty awful right now. Your grandmotherâs dead. The funeral was the saddest family event you have ever attended. You have no idea whatâs supposed to happen next.Â
But heâs right. He seems to be right a lot these days, actually.Â
Tomorrow will be better.
Taehyung lets you sleep in for the next few days. Next several days, actually. Every time you wake up itâs close to noon and your husband is nowhere to be seen, the right side of the bed cold to the touch. Itâs nothing to be worried about, though, because you can still see the noticeable dip in the bed from where he lies upon it, sinking his weight into the mattress. Taehyungâs an early bird and youâve been having fitful nights ever since your grandmother passed.Â
Today, you pull yourself out from underneath the covers around noon, sluggish and still tired, squinting as the near-afternoon light streams through the enormous windows of the bedroom. Taehyung must have thought to keep the curtains open today.Â
You pull on the first casual clothes you see in your shared closet, some wide-leg sweatpants and a drapey t-shirt, and trudge downstairs like a raccoon to a trash can, hoping to fish through the kitchen cabinets to find something to eat.Â
Taehyung is, as far as you can tell, nowhere to be seen. You canât seem to hear him anywhere, and a part of you wonders where heâs at when you stumble upon the note left on the granite counter.Â
Had a meeting downtown, be back around 1! There should be smoked salmon and some cream cheese and bagels in the fridge.Â
Taehyung.
You chuckle to yourself as you read his flowy handwriting, amused that he thought to let you know of, of all things, the available breakfast foods in the kitchen. You check the clock. Itâs nearly noon. Which means you have just over an hour of the house all to yourself.Â
Having the house to yourself for five minutes is infrequent enough as it is, let alone for a whole hour. So often is Taehyung around, somewhere, holing himself up in one of the dozens of rooms or mindlessly wandering down the hallways. And for how much Taehyung is present, the funny part is that you still have no idea what he gets up to most of the time. Despite your voluntary abandoning of the separate bedroom rule, the two of you are still firm proponents of the sanctity of your personal spaces. There are rooms in the penthouse Taehyung has never been in, rooms filled with your clothes and makeup and accessories for when stylists come over before an event. A sewing room that you had specifically asked your parents for, because a part of you never let go of that childhood dream of being a fashion designer.Â
And there are rooms in the penthouse that you have never been in. Rooms with dark wooden doors that have always been kept closed, that you have never stepped foot in. Itâs not that you arenât curious as to what Taehyung gets up to. He could have a goddamn evil lair in one of those rooms and you would be none the wiser. But you donât go, because he doesnât go into your rooms. Because you two, despite all the vows you have broken, promised each other you wouldnât.
An hour to yourself is almost a good enough excuse for you to head back up to the bedroom and take a nap. Not that you donât get enough sleep on a regular basis, or that you even had a fitful night last nightâhell, you woke up near noon today and already you want to go back to sleepâbut what else is there to do when heâs not around? What new freedoms have suddenly been given to you?
You head back upstairs, much less groggy after that delicious bagel of yours, when you catch a whiff of what smells like wet paint coming from down the hallway. Itâs potent and immediately invades your senses, prompting you to wonder if that has always been there, or just magically appeared. Maybe you were so sleepy earlier, you didnât notice it.Â
Well, you notice it now. Unable to help yourself, you start to wander down the hallway, towards the source of the smell. God, it stinks. It takes you back to those days in middle school, when you would spray paint projects inside a tiny little classroom, have to step outside for fifteen minutes while you cracked the windows and aired it out. It gets stronger the further down the corridor you go, like a thick, smelly cloud stationed firmly within the walls of the penthouse. And then you realize where itâs coming from.Â
Itâs an art studio.Â
A very messy art studio, you amend to yourself, as you peek inside. The door is wide open, and all of the windows are popped too, but the extra air circulation doesnât seem to have made a dent in the scent. And all over the floor, the walls, and the tables are canvases covered in paint, denim jackets and pants and shirts with these wide, unafraid brushstrokes. Open cans of spray paint lie discarded on the hardwood floor stained with splotches of red, yellow, and green.Â
Is this what Taehyung does in his free time? Is this where he goes, this bright, sunny room at the end of the second floor hallway? Is this what he is making?
You look down in awe at the clothes resting on the floor, splayed out to maximize dry time. Abstract faces, landscapes, and words are painted onto the backs of jackets, the fronts of old white t-shirts. What hasnât made it onto the clothes has been put on canvases instead, blurs of color mixed together in this purposeful pattern, confidence emanating from every stroke, every dot. Itâs not art in the way that the gorgeous landscapes of Monet, the picture-perfect portraits of Kahlo, the messy, unplanned splatters of Pollock are. Itâs art in a different way. In a Taehyung way.Â
Who knew he loved it so much?Â
You almost feel like an invader encroaching on his territory when you lean down to start cleaning up some of the mess, throwing out empty spray-paint cans and tossing out grey paint water. You donât dare touch any of the work, donât dare try to move it. You do what you can, washing out the brushes resting in the water and cleaning up the wet splotches of paint on the hardwood. Over time, the thick scent of still-wet paint slowly fades, disappearing out the window as the fresh afternoon air seeps in. And you stand there, in a room full of art, in a room full of pieces that Taehyung has undoubtedly poured his heart into creating, and you smile to yourself.Â
Thatâs how Taehyung finds you ten minutes later, peering into the room after declaring that his meeting had ended early.Â
âThought Iâd find you in here,â Taehyung says with a grin as you jump at the sound of his voice, eyes widen when you turn around to see him standing by the door.Â
âOh, hey,â you say sheepishly. âI didnât hear you come in.â
âMaybe because this is the farthest room in the house from the front door,â Taehyung teases lightly, coming up behind you. âI see you found my studio.â
âI know Iâm not allowed in here,â you admit.Â
Taehyung scoffs. âWho says?â
âDidnât we both agree on that?â
He shrugs. âSort of. I think we just reached an unspoken understanding we wouldnât invade each otherâs personal space. But it was not in the fine print, no.â
âThe fine print of what?â
âThat deal we made.â
Right. That deal you made, four months ago, That deal, where the two of you agreed to pretend to be in love with each other during public appearances so you wouldnât get burned at the stake by your families. Where the two of you agreed not to interact with each other otherwise because you hated each other so much.Â
âOh, yeah,â you say distantly, feeling naive for already forgetting about it. It doesnât seem to have slipped Taehyungâs mind whatsoever.Â
âItâs okay, I donât mind that youâre up here,â Taehyung says, interrupting that piercing little voice in the back of your head that is asking you why on earth you forgot about that deal in the first place.
âYeah, Iââ You scratch at the nape of your neck, trying to find the words to say. âIt just smelled like paint, so I wanted to see what you get up too. And itâs this, apparently.â You motion vaguely to the entire room.
âYou sound⌠surprised,â Taehyung muses correctly.Â
âI guess I am,â you surmise. âIâm rather impressed, too, actually.â
âReally?â Itâs Taehyungâs turn to sound surprised.Â
âYeah,â you tell him honestly, looking into his eyes. âIâyou know, I just came in here because the entire hallway smelled like wet paint and I wanted to know why. But I didnât know you loved art so much.â
âThereâs a lot you donât know about me,â Taehyung points out.Â
You suppose thatâs true. You donât know his favorite color. His favorite song. His favorite book. For a long time, you didnât know what he got up to on his side of the penthouse. You donât know how he met his friends. What he studied in university. Who he has loved in the past. Who he loves now. You donât know why he does the things he does, and why he doesnât do the things he doesnât do.Â
But you do know his Chinese takeout order.Â
And you do know his hobbies. Well, one of them, at least.Â
Whoâs to say you canât learn more?
âWell,â you start with a smile. âIâm your wife, arenât I? Shouldnât I begin to learn?â
Taehyung picks up what youâre putting down instantly, grinning in response. âOnly if youâll tell me things about you, too,â he requisitions.Â
âI will,â you promise. Itâs the easiest one youâve ever had to make.Â
His face is light, bright, bathed in the rays of the afternoon sun. His eyes shimmer as they meet yours, golden flecks more pronounced like this, in this gorgeous, open space, daylight streaming through the windows. Looking at him makes you feel like you are surrounded by warmth, makes you feel like the sun is opening its arms out to you. He has always been gorgeous. Beautiful. But looking at him like this, standing in the middle of a room filled with all the things he loves, a yellow halo surrounding himâhe is ethereal.Â
Taehyung smiles. âThen I will, too.â
The hand-holding comes naturally tonight.
The funny thing is, actually, you donât need to hold hands at this gathering. Itâs not an event. Or a public appearance. Itâs not even a business dinner. Itâs your auntâs sixtieth birthday party, reserved exclusively for family. Isnât that strange? That Taehyung is, technically, family now?
For so long you had vowed to stay as far away from him as possible. Vowed to stick it to him whenever and wherever you could, do anything you could to get on his nerves, rile him up. Vowed that when you, one day, took over your family affairs, you would never, ever invite him. Make it known that he wasnât to be a part of your life. And yet, here you are. Clinging to him despite being well-acquainted withâloved by, evenâevery other person in the room. Holding his hand like a goddamn lifeline.Â
To be fair, Taehyung doesnât look a hair out of place here. Dressed relatively casually, a smart sweater with a collared shirt underneath it, he smiles warmly at all of your relatives and presents your aunt with a beautiful and very expensive scarf the two of you had commissioned from a designer in Italy, which she absolutely loves. She pinches his cheek and proceeds to wear it for the rest of the night.Â
âDamn,â you murmur to yourself as you wander around your auntâs house, hand wrapped around his arm. âThis place hasnât changed a bit.â
âWhen was the last time you were here?â Taehyung asks.Â
The question actually makes you think for a moment. âI donât know, maybe five years ago? Last couple of birthdays I was overseas or in school. Had to send her a card.â
âBet your parents were real pleased with that,â he jokes, making you both laugh. At least you two will always be able to share your experiences of domineering and influential parents with each other.Â
âOh, Iâm sure. Just as pleased as they were when they realized how much we hated each other.â You expect that little jest to elicit a laugh out of Taehyung as well, but he just smiles tightly, huffing out a breath of acknowledgement.Â
âEh, itâs not like that now, is it?â He offers up.Â
âI suppose not,â you muse, sitting down together on her ancient grandma couch in the living room. No matter how rich your family gets, sheâll never get rid of this thing, thatâs for sure.Â
One thing youâve picked up over time is that, for every second Taehyung spends basking in the spotlight, he spends an equal amount of time lingering by the wall, watching the rest of the world turn without him. Heâs an observer. He is one by nature, feeling an irresistible pull to understand humans in a way only artists could ever do. He sits down next to you and watches your family in an environment where they can relax, where they can feel comfortable and be casual with one another.Â
Very seldom have you ever brought friends to events like these. Small family affairs. But Taehyung isnât a friend, is he? No, heâs your husband. He belongs here just as much as you do.Â
âMy family seems to really like you,â you point out. Not that anybody has ever harbored as much disdain for him as you. Your parents called him respectable and polite when they told you you were to be wed. Your grandmother had said he was a dashing young man. He doesnât exactly have to reach far to be loved around here.Â
âThatâs my job, isnât it?â He replies snidely.Â
âOh, just take the compliment,â you say with a roll of your eyes. Taehyung always has to be so difficult. âIâm surprised you arenât nervous as hell. Last boyfriend I brought to meet my parents was shaking in his Louis Vuitton shoes.â
âLast boyfriend, huh?â Taehyungâs interest has been sufficiently piqued. âAnd, uh, how many of those have you had?â
You narrow your eyes at him suspiciously, smile twitching on your lips. âWouldnât you like to know, Mr. Heartbreaker.â Pretty rich of Taehyung to be asking you such a question when heâs probably had more girlfriends than you can count on both hands. âNot as many as youâve had girlfriends, thatâs for sure.â
âGuess Iâm a lot different than all those trashy guys youâve dated, arenât I?â He asks, an eyebrow raised as he looks at you.Â
âYou are?â
Taehyung nods assertively. âWell, yeah. First of all, Iâm your husband. Second of all, your parents love me. Third of all, you love me, too.â
You scoff. âDonât humble yourself. You donât know me that well.â
âSpeaking of which,â Taehyung says, eyes wide as he points to you knowingly, âhow about you tell me a little fact about yourself? Itâs my job to learn about you, isnât it?â
âThat is my line, watch it,â you sneer, pointing back at him. You wrack your brain for a fact that you can tell him, something more exciting than your favorite color but less weird than one of those terrible icebreaker exercises you had to do in college seminars. Something that has pertinence to who you are. Who youâve become. âAlright. I used to want to be a fashion designer when I was little.â
Now that catches Taehyung off guard. âReally?â He says, genuinely intrigued.Â
You shrug. âYeah. I learned to sew when I was really little. Been tailoring and hemming clothes all my life. But I always wanted to design my own stuff.â
âIs that whatâs in your room?â Taehyung asks. âA sewing machine?â
âBingo.â
âWow,â Taehyung says. âI didnât know that.â
âIsnât that the whole point of this exercise?â You say, just to be smart.Â
Taehyung shakes his head, eyes rolling.Â
âWhat about you?â You ask. You canât imagine what heâll say. Astronaut. Veterinarian. Or, if he really wants to surprise you, a business executive.Â
âA museum curator.â
It is an answer that simultaneously surprises and doesnât surprise you at all.Â
âFitting,â you muse. âYou could have put your own art on display.â
âPretty sure thatâs, like, super unethical,â Taehyung reminds you.Â
âSo? Youâre rich. Start your own museum. Put your own art on display. Live your dream,â you amend. âIt shouldnât be holed up in that studio of yours forever. It deserves to be seen.â
Taehyung smiles at you. âYou think so?â
You nod. âOf course. You create beautiful things, Tae.â Itâs the first time youâve ever called him that. And that is not lost on Taehyung, either.
âThank you,â he says softly, blinking as he looks at you. He doesnât say anything else. He doesnât need to.
Later that night, when everyoneâs gotten a few drinks into their systems and Bruce Springsteen is playing low on the stereo, Taehyung disappears off towards the bathroom, no doubt because of the excellent soup that was served that night. All by your lonesome, you feel a little stranded, surrounded by your old relatives dancing on the hardwood floor of the dining room, your other cousins too young to actually spend time with.Â
In the commotion, your mother comes up to you, swirling a rather large glass of red wine in her hand.Â
âWhereâs Taehyung?â She asks.Â
âBathroom.â
âNo wonder you were alone,â she says with a hearty laugh. âThe two of you have been glued to each otherâs sides all evening.â
âHeâs my husband,â you offer as an explanation.Â
âI know, I know,â she says, shaking you off with a smile. Your mother is a lot more casual once sheâs had her fill of wine, no doubt her favorite, Bordeaux. A lot more loving, too. âYou really made your grandmother proud, you know? She loved you so much.â
âI know,â you say, trying not to get choked up at the mere mention of your grandmother.Â
âShe was so happy to see you with Taehyung. It made her feel safe that you would be taken care of,â she continues on, barely paying you and your swimming eyes any attention. âShe would be so happy to see you with him now, too. How much you love her.â
âI miss her,â you hiccup out, trying to compose yourself. Nothing kills a birthday party like some sad sack crying over her deceased grandmother.Â
âI know, darling,â your mother says, calling you by a nickname she has hardly used ever since you turned eighteen. She squeezes you tightly, a small hug of comfort. âI miss her, too.â
Someone calls your motherâs name, distracting her as she wanders off to your uncle, who is asking what the best way to cut the three-tiered cake on the dining room table is. She bids you a goodbye before disappearing towards the kitchen, no doubt ready to make the cutting of the cake an affair all on its own.Â
Taehyung comes back soon after, spotting you instantly as you stand around in the living room.Â
âHey,â he says, noticing the wet shimmer of your eyes. âYou alright?â
You nod, feeling better already now that he has returned. Now that he is by your side. âYeah, Iâm fine.â
âI hope those tears arenât because you missed me,â he says, wiping away a stray one that has escaped from your eyes. You close them as his thumb brushes against your upper cheek, your eyelashes, opening them only when youâve felt his touch vanish from your skin, leaving little sparks in their wake.Â
âNo,â you say. But the night makes you honest, and a couple of drinks, even more so. âBut Iâm glad youâre here.â
Taehyung smiles. âMe, too.â
For all those days you have spent together, never have you and Taehyung had a night in. Which isnât necessarily completely surprising, considering how many evening events the two of you have had obligations to attend, considering your differing work schedules and meeting times. Considering that, for a very long time, the two of you had no desire to spend any time with each other at all.Â
But tonight, there is nothing on your calendar. No galas, no dinners, no meetings, no schedules. There is only Taehyung, who has spent the entire afternoon up in his studio, inhaling spray paint fumes and doing what he loves. And there is only you, who has spent the entire afternoon wondering what the hell youâre going to do tonight when there is nothing else planned.Â
You knock on the door to his studio, catching him right as heâs finishing up another piece. This one is a single flower, painted in broad, confident strokes, bright green and red and sunflower yellow decorating the canvas.Â
âHey, whatâs up?â He asks, turning around to face you.Â
âWanna order takeout tonight?â You suggest.Â
Taehyung grins.Â
Thirty minutes and your favorite Chinese food later, you and Taehyung have settled onto the couch, trays of dumplings and noodles and rice in front of you, an unfunny movie playing in the background.Â
You canât remember the last time the two of you sat on this couch together. Maybe that night you had made the deal? Perhaps not even then. It wouldnât at all surprise you if you found out that this was the very first time you and Taehyung have sat together on your couch, in your living room, in your house. So often is it occupied by othersâVictoria, who sometimes comes over to ooh and ahh at your closet, Jimin, Jungkook, and Hoseok, who sit on this couch and play FIFA like itâs their job, your mother, when she wants to make herself at home in a place that doesnât belong to her���but never you. Never you and him.Â
âThis is kinda nice, isnât it?â You ask, swallowing a bite of dumpling.Â
âChinese food is always nice,â Taehyung responds over a mouthful of cold noodles.Â
âNot that,â you say with a sigh, âthis. Sitting together. Watching this shitty movie.â
âItâs not that shitty,â Taehyung tries to reason. On screen, the main character is getting pied in the face during some weird college fundraiser. âOkay, itâs a little shitty. But itâs good background noise, right?â
You nod halfheartedly. âI guess.â Silence. You take another bite of your dumpling, not really sure how to continue the conversation. âWe donât really get to do this a lot, you know? Sit and eat dinner and watch a movie together. Like a date.â
âWeâre on a date now, are we?â Taehyung muses, eyeing you snarkily.Â
âIsnât that what this is?â You retort.Â
He shrugs. âI suppose it is.â
âTell me another fact about you,â you request, looking over to him where he sits on the opposite side of the couch.Â
âAbout what?â
âAnything.â
Taehyung pauses, ponders for a moment. But he could never say anything wrong. Not when there is still so much you donât know about him. Still so much you want to learn, so much you want to commit to memory. For so long you have stared at the planes of his face, the curve of his nose, the twinkle in those dark brown eyes. Those you will always remember. But what about who he is? What he loves? Those are things you still donât know.Â
âThe very first time I met you,â Taehyung begins, âI asked Jimin what your name was.â
âWhen was that?â You ask. Despite you being someone who has spent the better part of the last several years vowing never to give Taehyung the time of day, you sure donât remember when it all started.Â
âThat debutante ball,â Taehyung remembers fondly, âwhen we were fifteen. I asked Jimin what your name was because I wanted to ask you to dance.â
âShut up, no you didnât,â you say with a scoff.Â
âItâs true. You were standing there in that poofy white dress and I wanted to ask you to dance,â Taehyung points out. The fact that he even remembers what you were wearing is shocking.Â
Who knew. Who knew, back then, that you would one day grow up to marry him.Â
âAnd what did I say?â You demand more.Â
Taehyung laughs at the memory. âI came up to you, and I asked you if you wanted to dance, and you said, and I quote, âWho are you?ââ
âNo,â you say, aghast at your own behavior. Were those really the first words you ever said to KIm Taehyung?
âYou did. Donât you remember?â
You think back. Think back to every year you have ever known Taehyung, every year you have spent scowling at him from across ballroom floors, making some snide remark as you pass by each other in the hallway. Every year you have spent cursing his existence, willing him away from you so he could bother someone else. Every year you have listened to rumor after rumor of girlfriend after girlfriend. You think back and somewhere, somewhere in there, in those dusty corners of your brain and cobwebbed boxes of your heart, is that first memory of Taehyung, too.Â
Of him standing there in some generic black suit, black hair swept over his forehead, shoes too big. Of him coming up to you, trying to be as suave as a fifteen year old could be. Of you saying to him, instead of a hello, or even a whatâs your name, âwho are you?âÂ
Of him sayingâ
âAnd you said, âyour dream come trueâ.â Like a dam bursting open, the memories flood back to you all at once. âI remember that.â
Taehyung laughs out loud at the thought of him saying something so cheesy. âUnsurprisingly, you didnât want to dance with me.â
âYou were soââ you begin, but you donât have the words. Donât have the words to express how you felt about him that night. Donât have the words to express how you feel about him now. Thinking about this, talking about it, it is a bridge. A bridge between what was then and what is now. A bridge between who Taehyung was and who you were and who Taehyung is and who you are. ââso unthinkable. I couldnât believe you had come up to me and said that. I couldnât believe you had the audacity. But something about that night made me remember you. Made me remember your name.â
âYou thought about me after that?â Taehyung asks. âIs that what youâre telling me?â
âThere is something about you that is unforgettable,â you say, honest and real and true. What else can you tell him? The truth is that you have always thought about him. Whether you liked him or not.Â
You finish your dinner and place your trays on the end tables next to you, stacking your empty bowls and plates on top of one another as the movie rumbles on in the background.Â
âIt is kind of a shitty movie,â Taehyung admits after a while of being wholly unenthused.Â
âYeah,â you agree. âBut itâs good background noise.â
Taehyung laughs at your little mockery, warm and deep and from his belly. You look at him. He feels so far away, on the other side of the couch. Feels like heâs miles apart from you. You have spent countless nights clinging to his harm, hand gripped tight in his. And sitting like this, a full couch cushion of space between the two of youâit isnât enough anymore. So you inch closer.Â
And closer.Â
And a little closer.Â
Until youâre pressed up against his side, legs touching as they rest neatly in front of you, backs stick straight as you stare at the television.Â
Taehyung holds his arm up. An open invitation.Â
Without asking, you lean into him, resting your head in the crook of his shoulder, in the space right underneath his jaw. You pull your feet up onto the couch and curl into his frame, pressing yourself against him. He is warm and firm and inescapable. He smells of coffee and paint and Chinese spices. He wraps his arm around you and pulls you in, as if there were any other place youâd rather be.Â
You sit like that for a while. Wrapped up in each other. Lazing around on the couch as the stars twinkle above your head. The movie ends and the two of you donât even bother skipping the credits, letting them and the cheesy 80âs pop song play on, a distant soundtrack.Â
âI never thought any of this would happen,â you breathe out.Â
Taehyung looks down at you curiously. âWhat? This?â
âAll of it,â you admit. âUs. Getting married. That stupid tabloid picture. My grandmother. This. Itâs all so new.â
âNew things will happen all the time,â Taehyung muses aloud. âWe canât help when things change.â
âYou donât have any regrets?â You have plenty. Regrets that youâll never become the CEO you wanted to be in college. Regrets that youâll never become the fashion designer you wanted to be as a little girl. Regrets that you will come to resent this marriage, resent Taehyung more than you have in years past, all because you had no choice. Regrets that your grandmother couldnât see you now. Regrets that there were so many things in your life you could have changed, but didnât.
âI thought I did,â Taehyung tells you. âI wanted to spend more time with my friends. I wanted to major in art in college. I didnât want to marry you. I know you didnât want to marry me.â He looks down and you look up at the same time, eyes locking, inches apart. âBut looking back on it, Iâm happy where I am. With what I have.â
âI never thought it could ever be like this,â you say, words falling off your tongue before you even ask them to.
âWhat?â
âUs.â
Thereâs no need to elaborate. Taehyung understands. He understands that, half a year ago, you both would have thrown yourselves into a volcano before holding hands with each other. He understands that getting over your hatred for each other seemed like an absolutely insurmountable task. He understands that you had never wanted to marry each other, that you couldnât believe you would have to spend the rest of your lives with each other.Â
And he understands that now, things are different.Â
âIâm glad things happened the way they did,â Taehyung begins. âIâm grateful for us.â
You press yourself impossibly closer to him, feel his grip tighten around you. Like this, you can hear his heartbeat. Hear it thump like a drum, steady and firm and unwavering. His heart beats against his chest and you wonder.Â
You wonder if he can hear the way yours beats for him, too.
There were lots of things that made your night in together special. But one of them is the glaring fact that you donât get them very often. That their infrequency makes them all the more valuable.Â
This has become blatantly obvious to you, because right now you are not spending a night in together. Right now you are stuck at a gala that you have to attend for the sake of business, drinking thin flutes of champagne and mingling with people you barely speak to.Â
The one good thing about nights like these is that Taehyung looks positively gorgeous in suits. He sort of always has, but youâd never admit that to his face. At least not until now. And as his wife, you are lucky enough to have a front-row seat.Â
âI can feel you staring at me all the way from over here,â Taehyung deadpans as he helps himself to a chocolate-covered strawberry from the buffet table.Â
Youâre too obvious to have any shame about it. âWhat can I say, I like the view.â
âHard to believe I was the once the one being shouted at for being inappropriate in public,â Taehyung says with a shake of his head. He bites into the strawberry and eats it all in a single go, tossing the stems into a bin nearby as you join back up in the heart of the crowd.Â
âItâs only inappropriate if other people hear,â you tease, letting him guide you, hand intertwined with yours, towards an empty corner where the two of you can snuggle up to one another in (relative) peace.Â
âI donât think the champagne was very good for your filter, Miss Y/N,â Taehyung hisses into your ear, warm breath tickling your skin.Â
âDonât you mean Mrs. Kim?â You pose, an eyebrow raised.Â
That seems to do something to Taehyung. Itâs not very bright in here, with it being nighttime and all, but even still you can see the way his eyes darken. See the way his lips curl upwards, feel the way his grip on you tightens. It sparks something within you. Something deep in the pit of your belly.Â
Something that makes you want more.Â
You test the waters. âMrs. Kim has a nice ring to it, donât you think, Tae?â
Taehyung looks about a moment away from losing control. But instead of slamming you against the wall in front of all of these people and giving you what you really want, he growls out, low and powerful, âHome. Now.â
He doesnât need to tell you twice.Â
You hail your car outside of the venue and itâs all the both of you can do to not jump on each other right then and there, in the backseat of this giant black van, overcome with want, with need, with everything in between. Taehyungâs leg bounces impatiently the entire ride back, and the feeling of your hand pressed against his doesnât seem to be calming him down. He pulls you close to him in the backseat of the car, a hand resting on your thigh. You eye him carefully, as if challenging him to be any more daring. He grins.Â
Home cannot come soon enough. The two of you tumble out of the backseat and into the elevators, where you mash the top floor button after entering in the security access code, desperate and shameless. The ride seems to take hours, and the heat that surrounds you practically smothers you, covers you, fills up your lungs and chokes you.Â
There is nothing left by the time you reach your door. The moment it slams shut behind you Taehyung presses you up against the back of it, pins you against the wood as he hovers over you, eyes tracing your lips.Â
âTell me something,â he demands.Â
âWhat?âÂ
âA fact. Something I donât know.â
It doesnât take much thinking. âI want you,â you breathe out, watch it hit his skin, watch the way his eyes glint in the light of the entranceway. âPlease, Tae. I want you.â
Itâs enough for him.Â
This is not the first time you and Taehyung have kissed. The first time was nearly five months ago, in a chapel, at an altar, surrounded by hundreds of people. It was so unfun that you seem to have eradicated the mere thought from your memory. But you remember that feeling from that day. That feeling you got when you pressed your lips against his, cemented your marriage with a kiss. That heat. That sting.Â
Kissing him nowâthat feeling has returned tenfold. When his lips meet yours, it feels like fire is rushing through your veins, setting alight every nerve it passes, unforgiving and relentless. His enormous hands come up to cup your jaw, fingers pressing against the skin of your cheeks as they pull you close to him, keep you trapped in his hold. This is not the first time you and Taehyung have kissed but it feels like it isâit feels like there is a lotus blooming on a lilypad in your heart, it feels like you have been struck by lightning, it feels like nothing else you have ever felt before. It feels brand new.Â
Pressing back against him, he slowly releases you from the cage he has created against the door, spinning around so the two of you can tumble up the stairs and into your bedroom, unable to resist sneaking in pecks here and there as you make your way upstairs. Every step you take you stop, giggle as he presses you against the railing just so he can steal another kiss from you, put his hands all over your body. Itâs a wonder the two of you even make it into your bedroom at all.Â
When you do, however, all bets are off. Taehyung presses you against the still-made bedsheets with a glint in his eye and a growl on his lips, pupils blown wide as he stares down at you, at your body.
"Aren't you a sight? Laid out so pretty for me," he purrs, robbing a breath from you.
It's a tone you have yet to hear from him. You find yourself growing impossibly hot under his stare, burning with an uncharted desire.
You can hardly wrap your brain around it. Here you are, craving the man you had spent the better half of your young adult life loathing. Maybe itâs the champagne; maybe itâs the way his fingers are running slowly up the length of your clothed torso. Whatever it is, your stomach does flips, unfamiliar to the way your body preens under his touch.
"Don't let it go to your head," you tease, simply because you could.
Taehyung hums disapprovingly, pressing kisses into your neck as he grabs one of your thighs and wraps it around his waist, riding your dress up in the process.
You sigh, exposing your neck further for him as he paints bruises into your neck. It feels like just yesterday you had called him out at the altar for his habit of sporting the very same marks you were soon to wear.
Perhaps you should have thought twice about letting the man you had married purely under business pretenses press his hips against your clothed center, but as he rolls his into yours, your mind falls blank, silencing any and all reservations you should have.
Whimpering, you beckon his mouth back onto yours, tongue meeting his wantonly.Â
You feel his fingers creep up the outside of your bare thigh, thrilling you in the most primal way. Reaching the band of your underwear after what felt like entirely too long, he runs the pad of his thumb against the lacy fabric.
 You could scream. He is doing this on purpose. He must be. Surely he knows how badly you were aching for him? For him to fill youâ whatever the manner may be.
You let out a whine before you can help yourself, frowning as Taehyung looks pleased with himself, confirming his knowledge of your prolonged pleasure.
"What's that? Did you say something?" he mocks, looking cruel and yet strikingly gorgeous as he smirks above you.
"God, you're irritating,â you huff, hips jerking up against his as he pulls at the band of your underwear, the elastic snapping back into the flesh of your hip. "Just fuck me already."
He tuts, clearly unimpressed by your impatience, "Now, where is the fun in that?"
Your eyes flutter shut as his fingers suddenly snake their way between your thighs. Mouth falling ajar, you grip his shoulders as he runs his middle finger against your clothed slit, trailing up and down your warmth. To think he was still dressed while he was touching you like this...
"No... I think I'll take my time with you," he says.
You mew against his hand, arousal forming against his long digits' ministrations. You have to hand it to him. Taehyung knows what heâs doing. The life of a bachelor has seemingly served him well.
You arenât usually vocal in bed, but the way heâs purring words of filth to you, breath hot against the shell of your ear as he tells you how hot and slick your pretty pussy felt against his hand, has you gasping and sputtering, your own fingers wrapping around his wrist.
The fabric of your panties provides a friction that toys the line of pleasure and pain, making you thrust up to meet his motions, your humility slipping from you.
Taehyung watches you intently, cock growing hard under the constraints of his dress pants. You look better than he could've imagined, eyes watering and body shivering under his touch, his fingers soaking with your arousal. He can only imagine what you'd feel like with his fingers fully buried into you, rocking them against your velvety walls.
He lets out a groan of his own, turned on by the idea of you fucking yourself onto his fingers, whimpering out his name in ecstasy.
Thereâs this part of you that faintly recognizes that Taehyung has done this plenty of times before. Plenty of times with plenty of other lovers. But there is a different part of you, that part that bursts with light and hope, that reminds you that he was never married to those other ones. That his allegiance lies with you. And that thought, knowing that deep within you, he is yours, makes your jaw fall slack, pretty noises tumbling from your lips and your thighs clamping around him.
You were close, closer than you care to admit. Every touch against you is careful yet deliberate as he reads the signs of your body, the way it keens and arches into him, offering you words of encouragement as your climax finally hits.
"That's right. Good girl. Let go for me," Taehyung coos, eyes dark and focused on your writhing form.
You cry out into the familiar space of your shared room, head thrown back as you ride out the high, letting it wrack your body, send jolts throughout your veins.
You barely have time to catch your breath when he presses his mouth back onto yours, kiss still as eager as it was when you both first entered your home. You are alight with satisfaction as he pulls away to press a trail of kisses against your jaw.
"I wantâf-fuck," you stutter as he finds your already hypersensitive clit once more, rolling his thumb over your now soaked panties in tantalizing circles, "want to make you feel good, too."
Admittedly, this fantasy had crossed your mind once or twice, brought on by the way he carried himself in a suit and the way his large fingers wrapped around the champagne glass; confident, collected, and entirely charming. Who are you to shy away from a man like him? He certainly has always been rather good-looking.Â
He pauses his motions, pulling his hand back to sit on your waist. Your dress is of the finest, most delicate satin, and after tonight's activities, completely wrinkled. You can almost hear your stylist's cries of dismay. Whatever. You have a steamer. And why focus on the dress when itâs obvious the two of you are focused on what lies underneath it?
"Yeah?"
"Yeah." You nod, skin still burning from your past climax.
Helping you back up, Taehyung stands. You lick your lips as you sit back up on the edge of the bed, watching intently as he unbuckles his belt, audibly hissing as his pants fall to his ankles, cock visibly straining against the fabric of his underwear. Thank God you donât have to stand. With the way your thighs still felt weak and how your husband looks like a goddamn Adonis towering above you? Your legs surely would give out underneath you if you rose.
Brows furrowed, Taehyung palms over himself briefly before pulling down the waistband of his underwear, his painfully hard member slapping against his torso.
Your eyes widened on instinct. While the last thing you wanted to do was help inflate Taehyung's already large ego, you were certainly impressed at his size; thick and girthy, his tip red and shining with precum.
He couldn't help but smirk, thoroughly pleased by the way you stared at him unabashedly, chest rising and falling heavily.
"Open up for me," he orders.
And who are you to deny a request from your dear husband?
Your pretty lips wrap themselves around his engorged tip, all remnants of lipstick long gone by now. Taehyung hisses, a hand finding the side of your jaw as you run your tongue against the underside of his cock.
"Fuck, you're so pretty," he grunts, fighting off the urge to grip the back of your head and fuck your throat. As much as he'd love your have you choking and drooling all over his cock â and boy would he â he lets you set your own pace, not wanting to overwhelm you.
It doesn't take long for you to sink your mouth further down, however, clearly set on making Taehyung feel as good as you could.
A low moan erupts from his throat, digits pressing into your jaw in request to take more of him in, which you happily oblige.
You had your eyes trained on him, completely obsessed with the way he panted through pink lips, hissing slightly every time your tongue rolled over his sensitive tip.
Lolling his head to a side, his eyes meet yours, gaze primal and wolfish as he watches the way you worked his cock.
"Doing so good, love. Doing so fucking good for me,â he murmurs.
You hum against his skin at the sound of the sudden pet name, an unfamiliar feeling fluttering in your belly. You push aside the feeling, focusing instead on the way he grunts at the new sensation you had just given him.
Giggling, you pull off his cock, opting instead to press a kiss against his leaking tip, making sure to hold his eyes as you run kitten licks against it.
"God, you're such a tease." He shakes his head in disbelief.Â
He looks so good above you, shivering and cursing out praises on how good your mouth feels, how well you take his cock. Running your tongue along the length of his shaft, you become certain that this is a display you canât imagine yourself ever getting tired of. But you have all the time in the world, right?
"Y/N,â he gasps suddenly, hips jerking towards your face. "Love, I'm gonna-- gonna cum."
"Cum in my mouth, please." Your voice was pleading and desperate. Taehyung had never heard such words spoken more sweetly.Â
"Fuck's sake."
You let out a yelp in surprise as his fingers work their way through your hair, bringing your head back down onto his cock. You relax, though, when you feel the hot ropes of his cum hit the back of your throat, your hands finding purchase on his thighs as you do your best to swallow it all down.
Pulling yourself off him, you let out a small cough, eyes watering slightly as you hadnât managed to prepare yourself with a breath before his release. His large palm runs across the top of your head as you caught your breath, expression flickering with something unfamiliar. Could it be... fondness?Â
Your heart stammers at the thought as you stand, slowly stepping out of your dress, letting it drape off of your figure. Taehyung looks absolutely gobsmacked, pupils dark as he gazes at you, eyes unabashedly raking your body. Heâs shameless.Â
You both are.Â
Slowly, you step towards him, fingers reaching out towards his shirt, carefully undoing the buttons as you gaze at each other, expressions unreadable.Â
"Tae?â You ask innocently, blinking up at him. âFuck me?"Â
Your polite request makes Taehyung chuckle.Â
"Please?" You bring your bottom lip between your teeth, eyes blinking up at him adoringly for good measure. You reach the last button, let his dress shirt drape open. He brushes it off himself, stands there for a few seconds just to let the way youâre ogling his toned chest go to his head. At least heâs good-looking.Â
He sighs, probably contemplating some clever rebuttal, but eventually decides against it as his cock is already twitching back to life.
"Alright, love. Turn around. On your knees for me," He orders, making your stomach flip.
To your surprise, you are hardly in place when the warmth of his large hands finds the soft of your tummy, pressing you back into his chest as he pressed a peck to the back of your neck.
You squirm in his hold, whining as that same hand of his grabs hold of your breast, long digit rolling your nipple between their tips. You canât help but press your ass back into him. His cock feels hot and heavy, pressing against the back of your thigh, making your pussy clench in anticipation.Â
You want him.
You want him so bad that you don't know what to do with yourself, shuddering as his free hand runs along the side of your ass, leaving scorching hot trails on your skin wherever he kneads into your flesh. He's touching you everywhere â everywhere but where you need him the most, and the arousal that drips down your thigh mocks you.
"Dammit, please!" You exclaim, running out of patience.
"Please what?" He says, an eyebrow arched.
You shiver, committing the way his middle finger traced your pelvic bone to memory forever.
You puff out a frustrated breath, nearly at your wit's end. "Please fuck me, Tae."
Taehyung pauses, grip on your breast and hip tightening as he lets out a moan. You let one out yourself as you feel him readjust, cock pressing against your slick entrance.
"Fuck, you sound so pretty when you say my name," He grunts. "Okay, baby. I'll fuck you. Begging so nicely for my cock."
You let out a squeak as you're suddenly pushed down onto your hands, back arching as he pushes his fat cock inside your heavenly cunt. He's thick, so thick, that you instinctively grip the sheet underneath you, fingers curled around them tightly as if it means to hold onto your sanity.
Taehyung lets out a shaky breath, angling your hips up so that you could take more of him.
"You feelâfeel so good," he admits above you, and suddenly you wish you could see him. See the way his bangs stick to his damp foreheadâsee the way his tongue swipes over his bottom lip wickedly.
You let that thought go, however, as he thrust into you, making your jaw fall slack and eyes flutter shut. Profanities roll off your tongue unabashedly, helpless under the way his thick member pulls out of you, only to slam back into you.
You weren't expecting this. The way he stretches you out further than anyone had before. Your pussy clenches around him, reveling in the sweet, sweet burn.
He digs into the flesh of your hips, holding you steady as you mew and cry out, pushing your hips back in time to his, trying your best to meet his movements.
"Tae... fuck, fuck, fuckâ"
He was filling you to the brim. Filling you tight and deep.
God, the way he was panting behind you was music to your ears. His cock pulses every time you call out his name, voice muffled and buried as you had your head pressed into the mattress, hair messy and bouncing with every hard thrust.
"S'good! Fuck... so, ah, big..." you cry out.
You feel drunk. Intoxicated off this beautiful man and the way he makes you feel a way only he can.
You nearly let out a sob as the rough pads of Taehyung's fingertips suddenly reach around you and find your neglected clit, rolling light circles on the soft and swollen bundle of nerves skillfully.
You are a mess, whimpering and drooling into your expensive sheets, and he filled every inch of you, leaving no place undiscovered. Your high nears, stewing on low heat somewhere near the pit of your belly, waiting for a chance to erupt and wash all over you. Taehyung must be close to, you realize, as his thrusts began to slow down, slamming into you roughly as if chasing after his high.
"Gonna take this load? Huh? Gonna let me cum inside your pretty little pussy?" His voice is straining, as if trying to breathe evenly but merely moments from falling apart.
If only you could formulate an intelligent response, but instead, you are a blubbering wreck, thighs shaking as they threatened to give out underneath you. But somehow, Taehyung knew. He had you. Quicking his motions against your delicate pearl, he could tell you were close too, and he was going to make sure you got there.
Suddenly, you're crying out and convulsing, tears brimming at the ends of your eyes as you feel Taehyung empty into you, collapsing onto his hands as well.
You feel his hot breath against the back of your neck as he pants, breath growing more and more even as the two of you regain control of your bodies and minds.
Pulling out of you, he plops down beside you, and for a moment, the two of you hold each other's gazes, eyes speaking in ways words never could.
Finally, after what feels both like an eternity and just a moment, you work up the courage to say something, moving closer to him as you place a hand on his chest, cushioning your chin as you rested on top of it. Â
"Psst," you beckon, voice hushed.
"Yeah?" His voice is husky and tired.
"Iâm grateful, too."
"Huh?"
"Iâm grateful for us, too."
Taehyung's gaze is soft, and it lingers on you for a second before the sides of his mouth curl up tenderly. He grins down at you, eyes drifting shut. You feel him squeeze you closer, pressing you against his skin. And then, you hear his breathing steady, see his lips part slightly.Â
You lean into his chest, eyelids fluttering. âThank you, Tae.â
Not unlike the many other mornings you have awoken in this bed, when you open your eyes as the morning sunlight streams through the windows, Taehyung is nowhere to be found. The sheets on his side of the bed are flipped aside, revealing that soft outline of his body from the night before left imprinted into the sheets, a dip in the mattress where he slept. You had fallen asleep all wrapped up in each other, tangled up like vines, but must have separated sometime during the night. Distantly, you register Taehyungâs voice outside, notice his phone missing from his bedside table. He must be on an early morning call.Â
You check your phone for the time. Ten oâclock.Â
A late morning call, then.Â
Still basking in the afterglow of the night prior, you slowly inch your way out of bed, shivering as you pull the covers off you and scoot your legs around so they hang over the edge of the bed. You rub at your eyes until you faintly remember you did not take your makeup off last night, and when your hand comes away covered with black streaks and flecks of mascara, you wince to yourself. There goes five hundred dollars worth of a skincare routine.Â
After washing yourself up and applying as many serums as you can to your skin, you wrap yourself up in one of his button-up shirts, the torso so wide that it drapes over you. The tips of your fingers peek out from the ends of the sleeves, and you cross your arms lightly over your chest as you make your way to the door, ready to entice your husband back to bed for round two. What? Itâs Saturday.Â
You peer around the door to find Taehyung standing a few feet away, facing away from you. Heâs shirtless, and as his wife you have absolutely no problems ogling him, the toned curves of his back, the muscles in his arms. Heâs always been a looker. You just finally have an excuse to look for yourself.Â
You approach him quietly, not wanting to interrupt nor broadcast your sex life to anybody on the other side who may be listening. Already, the idea of crawling back in bed together sends goosebumps along your skin, makes you giddy with anticipation. Youâre just about to tap him on the shoulder, lips curled upwards in suggestion, when he saysâ
âAnd my inheritance? Thatâs secured now, right? Because I said I would pretend to be in love with her in publicâ?â
And it is as if Medusa herself appeared in this room, turning you to stone as your heart thuds to the floor, a hollow, empty noise.Â
You donât hear the rest of Taehyungâs conversation. You donât even hear the sound of your own heartbeat. This terrible, aching sound rings in your ears, silencing everything in its wake, drowning out even the sighs of your own breath. It is as if you have been frozen solid. As if you have been shot in the stomach. You stand there, feeling absolutely nothing, and all you can do is brace yourself for what is to come. Taehyungâs words were the knife but his next actions will be its removal, leaving in its wake an irreparable wound.Â
He turns around, casual and cool, voice still hushed. As if you were still asleep. As if you hadnât heard anything at all. But when he twists his body and sees you standing there, staring back up at him, lips parted in shock.Â
âIâll call you back,â he tells whoever was on the other side of the line, looking more panicked by the second. He opens his mouth so he can explain himself, but you donât need him to. Youâve heard everything already.Â
âI should have known,â you say, feeling angry and betrayed and sad all at once. âI should have known it was all an act.â
âY/N, wait, let me explainââ
âWhat is there to tell me, Taehyung? What are you going to say? That you didnât mean it? That you thought I wouldnât find out? That last night was just a one-off?â You demand. The heat from your veins hasnât left. Still, it simmers through your blood, burning you up from the inside out. âThat you didnât want to lie to me?â
âItâs not like that and you know it,â Taehyung says defensively, brows furrowed. âJust give me a chance to explain myself.â
âExplain yourself? How you pretended, every day and every night, just so you could get some more money in your bank account? So you could make sure you would get your fatherâs business when he died?â
Taehyung bites back easily. âDonât act like you werenât also faking it at some point. I know you were almost removed from your grandmotherâs will.â
Your tongue is bitter at the mention of your grandmother. As if Taehyung ever even knew her. âMy grandmother has nothing to do with this.â
âReally?â Taehyung challenges. âSo you wanting to stay in her will was just a little bonus, right?â
âDonât,â you say sharply. âItâs different.â
âDifferent how?â Taehyung spits. âBecause right now, to me, it looks pretty similar to what Iâve done.â
âMy grandmother died months ago,â you remind him. Her will is no longer the question. It has been written, settled, and executed. There was no reason for you to continue playing along once she took her last breath. No reasonâunless you wanted to. âMeanwhile youâve been keeping your inheritance a secret from me this entire time.â
âWe made a deal,â Taehyung says. âA deal that said we would both act happy and pretend to be in love because we both had things we needed to worry about. Family things. Money things. You were a part of this, just like I was. You pretended, too.â
âWell, maybe I stopped pretending!âÂ
You canât take it anymore. All this anger, all this emptiness, itâs been bubbling up inside you ever since you heard those first words come out of his mouth. It spills out of you all at once, an eruption from your lips, your heartâs doors bursting open. You have held his hand tightly in your own. You have pressed your lips to his. You have laid yourself bare in front of him. What is there left to protect? What part of you has not already been stained by him, by his touch, by the feeling of his fingers against your skin?
The hallway is silent, but you can hear your cry echo down the corridor. Hear the way it bounces along the walls before fading away.Â
âMaybe I stopped pretending,â you repeat, softer this time. You blink and already can feel the streaks along your skin, the tears falling from your eyes. âDid you ever think about that?â
âY/N, what are you talking about?â Taehyung looks like heâs in disbelief. Like he cannot believe the words you are saying to him.Â
Well, that makes two of you.Â
âCanât you see, Tae? Canât you tell?â You ask, the nickname falling from your lips before you can even help it. You must remind yourself to change that, later. âIâm in love with you.â
They are words you have never said to someone before. Not even your old boyfriends. Words that you always knew you would reserve for someone special. Someone who would touch your heart and make it their own, someone who would leave imprints of their fingers against your chest. Someone who would brighten you up from the inside out, leave you bursting with light.Â
Ironic, that Taehyung has become that someone. When he is the one person you never thought could.Â
When he has proven, time and time again, that you two just cannot mix. Oil and water. Pastel and acrylic. Satin and silk.Â
âYou donât have to say anything,â you spit out quickly, before Taehyung has a chance to respond. âI know it doesnât matter to you.â
âY/N, yes it does,â Taehyung begins, desperate and pleading. âI know you heard what I said, but I swear, it stopped being an act for me, too. Things are different now, just like you said.â
âDonât. Please.â You pull away as he reaches out towards you. Faintly, you remember that it is his shirt you are wearing. Remember that no matter what you do, he will always surround you. âPlease, Tae.â You have nothing left. You canât bear to look at him, but where else will you go? You cannot believe the things heâs said, the things heâs done, but where else would you go?
âI love you, too,â Taehyung says, and a part of you wants so badly to believe him.Â
A part of you wants so badly to ingrain those words into your head, carve them into your heart, let him wrap his arms around you and promise that everything will be alright. But things are different now. Just like you said. You and Taehyung are not the same people you were six months ago. Or six weeks ago. Or even six minutes ago. You are helpless and he has proven that he does not care.Â
âI have to go,â you say, looking away. You donât think you could handle turning back to him again. âPlease, Tae.â
âIâm sorry,â Taehyung says, and he reaches out once more but you are not there to meet him halfway. Were you ever?
âI know,â you whisper back.
You duck into your bedroom and pack a suitcase of everything you need. Being here is suffocating. Being with him is like setting yourself alight.Â
Victoria has no questions when you show up at her door later that day, suitcase by your side and this ridiculous bottle of Merlot in your hands. You had picked it up on the way over. You sort of figured you might need it.Â
âYou donât wanna talk about it, do you?â Victoria asks.Â
âTell me about your streaming service,â you hiccup in response.
Victoria is happy to oblige. She even tells you that she still hasnât picked a CFO, and that the position would be open for you if you ever wished to take it.Â
Funnily enough, what will become of you once your father retires and passes along the company is the furthest away from your thoughts.Â
You remember being so worried about that. Being so worried that, once they married you off like every good daughter should be, you would be absorbed into your husbandâs life, cut out of your familyâs. Your father would choose a cousin, an uncle, or even a friend to take after the business, bestowing upon you a thoughtful inheritance but nothing more than that. All of those years of schooling, finance in college, your MBA soon after, would be wasted, just so you could hang on the arm of your husband for the rest of your life.Â
Itâs thoughtful of Victoria to think of you for the position. She knows just as well as anyone else that you would be an excellent fit. And if things were just a little bit different, you would be jumping at the offer.Â
But your future career plans are on the backburner, along with the rest of your life.Â
All you can really do, right now, at this very moment, is wait for things to change. As they always do.Â
âDonât you have an event tonight?â Victoria asks about three days into your stay. Sheâs given you her favorite (her words, not yours) guest bedroom and an enormous closet to match, despite you only coming over with a carry-onâs worth of clothes.Â
You scoff to yourself. âLike Iâd want to go to anything with him.â
âHave you even called your parents?âÂ
âNo,â you say, not even caring about the repercussions. Thereâs no doubt in your mind that theyâll be ringing you soon. And when they do, maybe then youâll finally work up the courage to tell them what really happened. Tell them that you canât go back there. Not yet, at least.Â
âIâm sorry that this happened to you,â Victoria says as she hands you a bowl of vegetable soup, homemade from a couple of days ago. You nod to yourself, sniffling as you curl into the couch cushions and wish they would absorb you whole.Â
Thereâs no need to ask her what she means by âthisâ. Everything. From your engagement to the marriage, from those tabloids to the deal, from your grandmotherâs death to now. It has all been unfair. Life is unfair. And while youâve always known that, it has been particularly cruel to you as of late.Â
Still, when you wake up sometimes, you can still feel him tracing over your skin. Feel his lips hovering over yours, breath fanning out over your cheeks. You turn over and expect to see him lying there, on the right side of the bed, sheets mussed as they cover his figure. You wake up and for a brief moment, for that split, split second, there is peace. And happiness. And love.Â
And then there is nothing.Â
âYeah,â you sigh. âMe, too.â
Maybe he really does love you. Maybe things really did change. But you have always been a pragmatic person, always let your head guide you rather than your heart. The secretâs out. Taehyung had an inheritance he needed to secure. You were his path to doing so. Those things havenât changed. No matter if his feelings did.Â
âHey, look at this,â Victoria says, brows furrowed as she holds out her phone in front of you, revealing a livestreamed interview from the event tonight.Â
You peer over.Â
Itâs Taehyung.Â
Of course itâs Taehyung. Who else would she be showing you?
He stands in a clean-cut gray coat, draping over his figure, black dress shirt and slacks underneath, belt wrapped neatly around his hips. He holds his hand up in a wave and smiles politely to the cameras, to the reporters, letting the flashes wash over him like waves in the ocean.Â
âMr. Kim! Mr. Kim!â Someone calls. âWhereâs your wife?â
Oh, God.
Taehyung grimaces a little, pursing his lips. âMy wife wonât be joining me tonight.â
âCan you tell us why?â They shout.Â
âSorry, no more questions. Thank you for asking though. Sheâs well,â he says, quickly ushering himself along, entering the venue so no more reporters can bombard him. When he disappears, the livestream immediately moves on to the next guest, but you hardly pay them any attention.Â
âHuh,â Victoria says aloud.Â
Indeed. Taehyungâs response strikes you as rather odd. Why would he tell the public that? Why not make up a lie, say youâre sick, or youâre overseas, or youâre just late? Why simply tell them that you wonât be there? Surely, Taehyung is just as aware of the consequences of arriving at an event without you as you are. Thereâs no doubt that his parents will be in contact with him soon, too. No doubt that this will leave a stain on his family. His image. It might even threaten his inheritance after all.
So why not lie?
You frown to yourself, nose scrunching up in confusion. You donât like where this train of thought leads.
âYou okay?â Victoria asks when she sees the bewildered expression on your face.
âYeah, yeah, Iâm fine,â you say. Just completely befuddled. It escapes you, why Taehyung wouldnât just make up some sort of excuse as to reasoning behind your absence. Why he would even show up at the event at all. Certainly, going to the event without you is worse than not going at all. It prompts questions. It spreads rumors.Â
Later that night, you get a call from your parents, demanding to know why you werenât there with him. You say you got sick. You plead with them not to question anything.Â
You wonder what happens next. You and Taehyung still have two more events this week. A dinner and a ball. What will you do then?
Taehyung goes solo for the dinner. You suppose you could have predicted that, considering his apparent willingness to arrive alone for the first event, too. He hasnât made any efforts to contact you and for once, youâre glad for his silence. Not that you even know what he would say to you, anyway, but at least he isnât begging you to come back to him.Â
The sad truth is that if he did, if he got down on his knees right in front of you and willed you to come back home, you probably would. He has always been impossible to resist. Even when you first met him, when he sauntered up towards you and told you he was your dream come true. You didnât know it then. But he was. He was everything you would ever want.Â
Why would he lie?Â
Why would he do that?
You canât wrap your head around it. What is he getting out of it by telling the truth? By admitting to the paparazzi, to the reporters and the cameramen, that you wonât be there with him. That you will not be joining him. Nothing, certainly. His parents must be furious. His inheritance may be on the rocks. His image might tank.Â
So then, why do it at all?
Could it⌠could it be?
Is it true?
You have loved Taehyung for a long time. Longer than you probably even care to admit. You have always held your head high at events, spoken loudly and without fear, but being with him made you feel safe. Secure. You would hold his hand and know, know that he was holding yours, too. It grounded you. It soothed your worries.Â
Does he really love you back?
Taehyung smiles politely and laughs when he needs to at these events, but he doesnât look the same. Even through the screen you can see those bags under his eyes, that spark that has faded. You hardly recognize him. He looks so lonely, without someone by his side. So distant.Â
When you know the dinner has ended, you almost pick up the phone and call him.Â
Almost.Â
Instead, when the ball rolls around, you ask Victoria if sheâs got a spare dress she can lend you.
 Kim Taehyung, for someone you have seen covered in paint splotches, wearing old college hoodies, and fresh out of a restless nightâs sleep, cleans up pretty well. For a married man, at least.Â
You wonder what the past few days must have been like for him. If they have been as empty as your own. Wonder what it was like, riding alone in a big black van to this hotel ballroom, no one to tease, no one to laugh with, no one to hold. No one to poke him awake if he accidentally fell asleep. No one to make sure heâs okay.Â
Taehyung stands right outside of the entrance, waving politely to all of the paparazzi, smiling as the cameras flash, giving them the time of day for a moment before he heads inside and muscles his way through another event without you.Â
Or so he thinks.Â
You spot him just as he opens his mouth, ready to repeat those same lines all over again.
My wife wonât be joining me tonight. Sheâs well, though.
And maybe itâs just because you haven���t seen him in nearly a week. Maybe itâs just because he is about to lie to those reporters once more, ready to face whatever consequences come his way.Â
Or maybe itâs just because you miss him. Miss him terribly, have been missing him terribly. Being away from him was necessary, but that didnât make it any less unbearable. Not getting to hold his hand, see his smile, meet his eyes. You and Taehyung may not have always liked each other, but you saw him every day regardless. He became a constant in your life. Not an if, but a when. If everything went to shit, you always knew he would still be there.Â
And there he is.Â
âWait! Taehyung!â
Taehyungâs eyes widen as he hears your voice, gaze darting around wildly, mouth parted in surprise. He looks around desperately, scanning the crowd, meeting the eyes of every single person in front of him until he finally looks to the left, sees you rushing up towards him, hiking up the skirt of your dress as your heels tap against the sidewalk.Â
And when he spots you, sees you running up to him, his body relaxes, a weight lifted from his shoulders as he beams back at you, relieved and thankful and filled with joy, all at once. And you know, then.Â
You know that everything will be okay.Â
âSorry Iâm late,â you say sheepishly, cheeks burning as he looks at you, takes in every inch of you, breathes you in and lets you fill him up.Â
Taehyung doesnât respond. You reach out to hold his hand but he grabs your wrist and pulls you in, presses you against his body as he presses his hands against your cheeks, palms burning as they meet your skin, and he kisses you. In front of all these people, he kisses you.Â
And goddamnit, you will kiss him back.Â
It feels like lightning, like a thunderstorm, like the waves of the ocean are crashing against your heart. It feels like fire, like flames are licking at your veins, sending sparks through your blood. It feels like home.Â
You and Taehyung ignore the shouts of reporters, the flashes of cameras, the honks of the cars on the other side of the road. When you part, he presses his forehead against yours and lets the tip of your nose meet his. And you smile.Â
âDonât be alone any longer, Mr. Kim,â you whisper, loud enough so only he can hear.Â
âWhen Iâm with you, I never am, Mrs. Kim,â he murmurs back.Â
You wonder what those tabloids will be saying about you tomorrow.Â
The rest of the night finds the two of you pretty much inseparable. You wrap yourself around his arm and for the first time in a long time, he presses his hand against the small of your back, keeping you close. Like heâd ever lose you again.Â
One of your least favorite parts about attending balls used to be the dancing. As a young and eligible bachelorette, you would always have to lock hands with another, let him awkwardly guide you along to the music as you made the worst small talk imaginable, forcing laughter and smiles whenever he said something he thought was particularly funny.Â
But, like so many others, things have changed. Things are different now.Â
The waltz comes on and you and Taehyung are the first to reach the center of the ballroom floor, letting him rest his hand on your waist as you press yours on top of his shoulder. Let him twirl you around the room as the orchestra plays in the background, a soft, sweet, light little melody that carries you along.Â
âI missed this,â you say softly.Â
âI missed us,â Taehyung corrects. He pauses for a moment, swallowing hard. âIâm sorry for not telling you about my inheritance.â
âIâm sorry for storming out. I should have listened to you.â you respond easily. You both have plenty to apologize for. But night is darkest right before dawn.Â
âI should have said something,â Taehyung says with a shake of his head. âBut I was just soâso worried that something would go wrong. And I didnât know how to explain how I felt about you. I acted in the beginning, too, but then things changed.â
âThey always do,â you muse with a grin.Â
âI couldnât believe I had you,â Taehyung admits. âI mean, look at you. Youâre gorgeous. And funny. And true.â
âGo on,â you tease, even though you do nothing to hide the smile inching its way across your face, the heating of your cheeks, the simmering of your skin.Â
âOh, shut up. You know what I mean.â Taehyung rolls his eyes. âI justâI felt something for you I couldnât explain. I still canât.â
You donât have to prod any further. You know. Deep within your heart, you know. There is love blossoming in his to match the garden that has bloomed in your own. The flowers that have sprouted in the ashes. He has them, too. And when those petals open and the light streams in, he will know. He will know, too.Â
âYou make me crazy,â you tell him, whispering gently into his skin. âBut Iâm a better person when Iâm with you. I know I am.â
âI meant what I said, that night,â Taehyung says. Makes you wonder which night heâs actually talking about. âThat Iâm happy that things have changed. That things happened the way they did. Iâm grateful for us.â
âI am, too,â you say. And you are.Â
You rest your head against his chest as you dance together, swaying back and forth to the beat of the drums, to the strums of the violins, all wrapped up together like ivy, like vines. Those, too, sit in that garden of yours. Keep you tethered to his side, keep him close to yours. He holds you in his arms and he smiles, because he knows, too. Knows that that garden in your heart will soon have a matching one in his. A mirror image of who you are. Who youâve become.Â
Things change. They always will. But so long as he is by your side, and so long as you are by his, you know. Everything will be okay.Â
It's different, this time, when Taehyung presses you into the mattress.Â
There is no rush. Because now you know for certain that all the time in the world is yours. He is yours forever. You are his.
The two of you are a mixture of tangled limbs and shared breaths, the feverish, irrepressible need to give yourself to each other nearly tangible. He breaks the kiss suddenly, and youâre about to break out in protest. That is, until you see him unbuttoning his shirt.
Inspired, you wiggle out of your own clothes, eyes locked on Taehyung's soft torso and the idea that you had married such a beautiful man, inside and out.
Looking back, you wonder if that was always inevitable. If you and Taehyung falling into each other had been written in the stars from day one, sealed as your fate from the moment he came up to you at that ball when you were teenagers. He was going to be a part of your life no matter what. Whether or not you ended up marrying him. But having him like this?
It makes it all worth it.
"Do you like what you see?" That old cocky smirk of his makes an appearance.
You raise a brow, choosing to omit a response as you unclasp your bra, letting it fall from your chest.
Taehyung swallows.
"Do you?" You tease.
His response comes in the form of bites down your necks and licks down your chest, stealing your breath from you.Â
Your clothes are somewhere dispelled beside your passionate bodies, growing cold beside the way your two hot bodies warmed one another.
"You are so beautiful," Taehyung praises, fingers coming up to cup your breast, bringing it up to his mouth.
You mewl, wrapping an arm around his shoulders as his tongue toys with your pert bud, teeth grazing it ever so often just to hear the broken gasp that'd always follow.Â
"And so sensitive too," he giggles, making you pout. His hands are gentle as if every touch means something. As if you mean somethingâno, everythingâto him. And the most wonderful part is that he means everything to you, too.Â
"Shut up." You roll your eyes playfully, gasping as his palm comes down the side of your thigh suddenly in warning. You bite down your swollen bottom lip at the gush of arousal that dampened your underwear in response.
"Watch your tone, love. Of both our positions, you are in the most compromising one." He reminds you. It isn't a threat, and while usually, that kind of tone would thrill you, you couldn't help but want his mouth back on yours already.
"You talk too much." You flop back onto the bed with a sigh. Taehyung watches with interest as your pretty tits bounce in consequence. Extending your hands out towards him, you give him a pouty look. "Just wanna kiss you."
"Is that all I am to you? Just a pair of lips for you to mack on? I've got news for you, sweetheart, there's a brain behind these ravishing good looks." He scoffs in feigned offense, sitting back on his heels.
You giggle.
It seems as though even during the most intimate of moments, Taehyung still found a way to be, well, Taehyung. At least that hasnât changed.Â
"Whatever, pretty boy. Why don't you come over here and put that mouth of yours to good use?" You purr, making his eyebrows raise in surprise.
"Oh? I don't remember you being this assertive when I was pounding you into the mattress last time."
âWhat, I canât have a little fun as well?â You tease, grinning as you look up at him, raking your eyes over his figure.Â
"Wanna have fun, love?," He murmurs into your ears, hands gripping either of your plush thighs. "Then spread those pretty legs for me, and I'll show you exactly how much fun you can have."
God, you love this man.
You oblige eagerly, breath quickening as he helped you press your knees by your chest, leaving the wet patch in your underwear on full display.Â
"My pretty little wife." He sighs dreamily, making heat rush to your core.
Taehyung's cock stood loud and proud, a hot reminder of where the night would eventually lead to. Seriously, how did you get so lucky? You must've been a saint in a previous life, you decide right then. Or at least, the stars have chosen to be rather kind to you in this one.
"Gonna take these off," he mutters, mostly to himself, tugging the ruined fabric over your ass and down your legs, with your help, of course.
Despite your usual display of confidence, lying beneath your husband, spread out like this, has you feeling vulnerable and slightly insecure. But that insecurity vanishes, however, as he lets out a soft moan, fingers moving to spread your glossed lips apart.
"So fucking pretty, baby. Gonna make you feel so fucking good," he groans, leaning down to press his face near your most intimate part.
Pressing a tentatively lick against, his eyes flicker up to yourself, curious to see if youâre okay with him proceeding. And, well, itâs not like youâre going to say no, are you?
Embarrassingly, you rut against him, making him laugh as you drown in your own mortification.
"Need it that bad, huh?" He coos.
"Yes, please."
The rest of your plea is lost in a moan as Taehyung finds your clit, wrapping his pink lips around the sensitive muscle and giving it a generous suck. Your hands are in his hair before you can think to stop yourself, tugging at his scalp deliciously as his mouth makes its way with you.
Thank goodness for this apartment belonging to just the two of you as the noises that tumbled from your lips surely would've left a roommate blushing.
You're panting, begging for more even though you aren't sure how you'd even handle more. It comes as a delight and slight surprise as fingers suddenly slip inside, wasting no time to rub against your velvety smooth walls, curling themselves inside you.
"Fuck, Tae!" you cry out, eyes squeezing shut.
It was pure reflex. Up until now, you had been watching Taehyung intently, completely consumed by the way his mouth moves against you. How his tongue flicks against your needy clit cruelly. It just felt too fucking good.
You're so wet, positively dripping down his chin as he runs his hot muscle up and down the length of your pussy, devouring you like he hadn't eaten in months, and you were his first meal.
Taehyungâs nothing short of addicting, completely and utterly intoxicating, and you slip further and further to your demise with every lick he takes, every press of his tongue against your clit.
He has a hand pressed against the lower half of your torso, feeling the way you jerk and squirm as he makes a mess of you. Youâre close and you know it, too, if not by the way youâre calling his name over and over again, then by the way your thighs tremble, hardly even strong enough to stay up.
"Let go for me, love. I've got you." He sounds so sweet, so angelic, despite how filthy what he was doing to you was.
His words are the push you need, and, like a rubber band that has been stretched past its limit, you finally snap, back arching off the bed as you come with a cry. White fills your vision, and your mind goes blank, only sounds of blissful static filling your ears.
His fingers hold up your quivering legs, mouth pressing kisses onto your pussy encouragingly until you simply can't bear it any longer, pushing his mouth away as you stutter out words of sensitivity and overstimulation.
âIâm going to have to request more of that throughout this marriage.â You manage to say once your vision and breath come back to you.
Grabbing one of your hands, Taehyung brings it to his mouth.
âAll you need do is ask,â he replies, making you laugh as he presses a kiss to the back of your hand, always a gentleman
Not long after, you find yourself pressed against Taehyung, tongue running against his as he presses his hips into yours. He isnât coy about his want for you, rolling his cock against your already sensitive center. Warm precum leaks onto your lower abdomen, and suddenly, all you can think about is having him inside you again.
âTaehyung?â
You donât even need to ask. Hitching your leg around his thigh, he knows exactly what youâre seeking, lining up his leaking cock with your swollen entrance.
Pressing into you, he buries himself to the hilt, groaning out as your warmth envelopes him. You moan out so prettily for him, feeling tight and full with your first orgasm only minutes ago.
âYou okay?â he hums, kissing your cheek.
You nod, ears warm at the intimacy of the moment. In many ways, this is nothing like your first time together. You are face to face, eye to eye, heart to heart. Between your bodies could be found more than just desire, but commitment. Devotion. Love.Â
âI love you, Tae.â You gush, sighing out as he begins to rock into you.
He falters slightly at your confession but recovers quickly, intertwining his hand with yours and pressing it by your head.
Faintly, you realize.Â
That was the first time you had ever told him that.
You look up at him, expecting some wide eyes or even a bit of a nervous tilt to his lips, but all you are met with is a glow. He beams down at you, and your heart swells.Â
âI love you, too, Y/N,â he whispers, but you hear the words in your ears loud and clear.
Soft noises fill the room as the two of you become oneâhearts synchronizing with one another in silent promise.
It was a promise unlike the one you had made to each other that day at the altar, for this one was real. This one was true.
You shutter with every thrust of his hips, your abused clit finding itself in the crossfire of Taehyungâs passionate motions.
Whimpering, you cling to him, overwhelmed and emotional, like your heart was about to burst. Taehyung lights a fire in you, sends lightning straight through your core. Every word, every smile, every kiss, every touch, they send shivers down your spine, tingles throughout your skin. Itâs like youâre falling in love with him all over whenever you see him, whenever his deep brown eyes meet your own.
You remember being so afraid of love that you broke up with all your old boyfriends because of it. Because you couldnât commit, because you were worried about your career, because they just didnât give you that spark. But lying here pressed against him, against your husband, you arenât afraid. Wrapped up around him, tangled up in him, you know.Â
Between messy kisses and words of adoration, you find yourself growing closer and closer to your release. Brows furrowed and neck flushed, you come with a soft whimper of his name, coaxing his own orgasm out of him. He lets go inside you, painting you with his seed in a way that pleases you to no end.
Hand still in yours, he gives it a squeeze, pressing a kiss onto your damp chest, right over where your heart beats for him.
âI love you,â Taehyung says again when you meet his eyes, firmer this time, louder. Like heâs worried you didnât believe him the first time.Â
âI know,â you say with a giggle, the words going straight to your headâand your heart.Â
Taehyung scowls. âWhat, no âI love youâ back? Is that what Iâm hearing?â
âWell, only because you want one so badly,â you tease, pressing a quick kiss to his round button nose. âI love you, too, Tae. Always will.â
âI think I knew, then,â Taehyung says with a fond sigh, nostalgia overcoming his expression. âThat first time we met. I knew you would be mine, one day.â
âYou got lucky,â you scoff slightly. âBut Iâm glad things happened the way they did.â
âYouâre my dream come true, Y/N,â he says.Â
âAnd you are mine,â you murmur.
As the two of you drift off, all twisted up in each other, so mixed up you canât figure out where you end and he begins, you think back to that night. That ball.Â
âWho are you?â You ask, nose scrunched up in distaste. Before you stood a boy you had never met before, wearing shoes that were too big for him and a suit that was a touch too small.Â
He grins at you, running a hand through his perfectly-styled hair fringe swiped neatly over his forehead, and he says, âyour dream come true.â
And so it was.Â
donât forget to message me! ~ and donât forget to message rose!
#taehyung smut#v smut#bts smut#taehyung fluff#taehyung angst#bts fluff#bts angst#bts scenario#v fluff#v angst#v scenario#taehyung scenario#bts imagine#taehyung imagine#v imagine#bts au#taehyung au#w: love me or we both go down#ITS FINALLY DONE YOU GUYS HOLY SHIT#this fic honestly has plagued my thoughts and my dreams#since AUGUST
8K notes
¡
View notes
Text
Am I the only one who's tired of the "Sly is afraid of everything but gets over his fears and does the job so therefore he is brave and interesting" bullshit? There's no actual character development for him. He's just there. Season 4 was setting up some internal conflict for him, but it got canceled. So i decided to write a list of all the internal conflict for the characters.
Sylvester Dodd
His desire is to be seen as a strong, brave man, and have people take him seriously. We see that desire when he sees his own obituary, and how brief it was. In the S3 finale, we see him writing an account of what happened on the island, and uploading it online, only to find out in the S4 finale that he's been writing and uploading false accounts of the Scorpion cases for years where he does the things Walter does. He is doing everything from Alderman to Lawyer, winning gaming tournaments and becoming chess grandmaster in his youth, and risking his life at Scorpion so that he would be seen that way, and be able to see himself that way.
His fear is of living in shame. We find out how that fear sparked in S1E10 "Talismans" when he tells Megan that his parents were frustrated by the way he was, so they sent him off to his aunt's house. His father was out on missions because he didn't want to be around him. He was constantly humiliated throughout school as a child, and he has had a lot of shameful moments in the show. From S2E19 "Ticker" where he drops the bowl because of a monkey and almost messes up the mission, to S3E14 "Sharknerdo" with the pictues of him in a wizard costume reaching Denmark, to S3E19 "Monkey see, monkey poop" where he sits out on the mission due to his fear of monkeys, and has a psychosomatic reaction due to shame and guilt. In S3E17 "Dirt seeds done cheap", we see the worst fears of the team, Happy is being rejected, Cabe is weakness and Sly is just ... chickens? No, it's deeper than that. In his childhood, a bully locked him in a zoo cage with chickens while all his class laughed it him. It was the most shameful moment him his life. In that episode, he experiences that same situation, that same shamefulness. Sly's biggest fear is living in shame and people being ashamed of him and not taking him seriously. All his phobias keep people from taking him seriously like he wants, and puts him in shameful situations for his age and status. I hate the writers for not focusing on it.
Walter O'brien
His desire is to be loved for who he is. We see that when he dates Linda. Toby tells him about the damsel effect, and he says that she likes him for him, only to find out Toby was right. Then When Tim dates Paige, he tries to become normal so that Paige would want him. If he's not gonna be loved for who he is, then he would pretend to be someone else. Then in S4, we see him continuing to do that.
His fear is of that same love. Every single time he has ever connected with someone, it always ended in pain for him. From Cabe to Megan and his parents, and Linda and who knows how many other attempts. In the S3 finale when Paige asks Walter how he feels about their relationship, he says he feels sick to his stomache. He is hopeful, but terrified. In the S4 finale, they prove him right.
His second desire is to save as many lives as possible. He wants to make up for the lives that were lost in Baghdad when he was a child, and he's willing to do anything for it, even if it costs him his life.
His second fear is of people dying because of him like in Baghdad. Whenever that happens like in S2E6 "Tech, drugs, rock and roll" he goes suicidal to save the people in danger. It's honestly so impressive that a character that was treated like a joke for the better part of the show still managed to be interesting.
Happy Quinn
Her desire is to have a family and experience stability, security and happiness. She grew up moving from foster home to orphanage and back. When she marries Toby, she starts spending time with Walter, Paige and Ralph as a family instead of Toby because she longs for the childhood that she didn't have. Later she tries to have a baby with Toby before they decide to adopt.
Her fear is of being rejected and alone. Her own father left her at St.Luke's when she was 2. She was the odd one out in the orphanage and no one would adopt her, while all the other kids were adopted. When she grew up, she was constantly on the move because she couldn't provide a stable life for herself. Until Walter came and did just that for her.
Toby Curtis
His desire is to prove that he is worthwhile, and gain the approval of others. We see this desire in S1E4 "Shorthanded" when Toby almost messes up the mission because he wants Walter's approval. And he keeps seeking Walter's approval until S2E6 "Tech, drugs, rock and roll" when Walter drains the oxygen from the room Toby is in, he faints, and when he wakes up, he comes to believe that Walter truly doesn't care about him. He starts seeking Happy's approval along with her heart he's been already seeking. Until he marries her in S3, by which time he starts trying to grant all her wishes to prove his worthwhile.
His fear is of being worthless. We find out how that fear sparked in S1E10 "Talisman" when he tells Happy about his past. He had a clinically bipolar mother and his neglective and unloving dad struggled to manage her illness. He became a doctor to help them both and failed, resulting in his crippling guilt and self-worth issues. Those issues are beneath the surface, seen in his little interactions with Walter and Happy across the seasons. Especially in S4 when he finds out about his sperm conditions and those fears resurface again.
Paige Dineen
We really don't see much internal conflict with her aside from the fact that she fears abandonment because her mother and Drew abandoned her. Which is probably the reason her character is so uninteresting and one of the many reasons Waige falls short to Quintis.
Cabe Gallo
There are two main internal conflicts with him over the course of the show. Season one has his internal conflict over the secret of Baghdad and how Walter would react to it. Season 3 had internal conflict with him wanting to find love again, and his fear of weakness.
Ralph Dineen
He's just there.
#cbs scorpion#walter o'brien#paige dineen#sylvester dodd#toby curtis#happy quinn#cabe gallo#ralph dineen#scorpion cbs#internal conflict#character making#character building#writing#character creation#characters
54 notes
¡
View notes
Text
karasuno boys as boyfriends
a/n: im just basically astral projecting myself into these situations; ALSO if you want more detailed ones, just ask, and you shall receive! (also this is my first post iâve written on here! but if you want plenty of kpop content iâm @hyucksong where iâve been writing and I am still active! :))
---
[KARASUNO BOYS AS BOYFRIENDS HEADCANNONS]
-tsukishima, yamaguchi, hinata, kageyama, tanaka, nishinoya, sugawara, daichi, and asahi
---
tsukishima kei.
the type to look you straight in your eyes when you ask for a hug and say âno, who do you think i am, your boyfriend?â
runs his hands through your hair from the front and then when his hand reaches the back of your head he pulls you into him and kisses you either on the forehead or the lips <3
in order to be in a relationship with him you HAVE to have the same type of humor.
i donât think he could date someone who doesnât make fun of people with him
you guys are like best friends who make fun of each other and. make out a little every once in a while
heâll hold your hand and hug you in public but he will NEVER do anything else, especially not in front of the boys
he thinks the blush that ignites on your kissable cheeks should be for his eyes only
he gave you a keychain that had a cute little strawberry shortcake on it. and itâs your most prized possessionÂ
will shoot a glare at anyone who watches you too closely. like no. donât get googly eyed over MY girlfriend.Â
and you donât have a problem with that ;)Â
yamaguchi tadashi.
he likes to watch you when youâre not looking to pick out the little habits you do
he thinks that knowing someoneâs little hardly noticeable habits is one of the most intimate things on mother earth
he knows that you stir the milk in the bowl three times before you pour the cereal in to check for chunks because you accidentally drank spoiled milk when you were younger
NEVER has an issue getting you a gift for any occasion. he ALWAYS knows what youâre looking at and what you want and you lowkey think he can read your mind but in reality he just pays attention <3
youâre either just as shy as him to bring out his more assertive side or more assertive than he is to bring out his more timid side -- both are good
kisses you on the forehead and holds your hand in public -- he loves PDA because he can show you off :â)
yes. he kisses the back of your nape in public. so what.Â
YES. HE CLOSES HIS EYES WHEN HE DOES IT AND ACCIDENTALLY INHALES YOUR SCENT AND WHISPERS IN YOUR EAR THAT YOU SMELL GOOD. IDC IF YOU THINK THATâS CREEPY. ITâS CUTE. YES. HE GIVES YOU THAT LOOK THAT SAYS HEâS CRAZILY IN LOVE WITH YOU. SO WHAT.
kageyama tobio.
he probably fell in love with you because you were just as passionate about something else as he is about volleyball; music, drawing, writing, math, science, reading -- whatever
i see this relationship as being one thatâs like...accelerated friends. like,,, you act like him and hinata except you kiss sometimes and he can see you at the end of the wedding aisle
DEFINITELY reads cosmopolitans once you start dating because he wants to be a good boyfriend for you <3
PDA is literally little to NONe,,, not because he doesnât like it...itâs just because he doesnât realize that heâs not showing you affection lololol
like in one arm he has his athletic duffel bag and the other he has a volleyball
he doesnât mean to neglect you he just does AGAGAG
realized he liked you when he thought about you when he was drinking his milk and mindlessly bought you one too
the first time yâall kissed. he literally stared at you so intensely for a SOLID ten minutes debating in his head whether or not he should just go for it or wait or just smash his face into yours and hope your lips connect
he chose to cross his fingers and ended up smashing his forehead and nose into yoursÂ
it was cute tho <3
hinata shoyo.
YALL HAVE DATES WHERE YOU BABYSIT HIS SISTER. WTF SO CUTE
when yall cuddle and youâre the little spoon he likes to put his head on your shoulder/between your neck and watch as you scroll through tiktok or instagram and just mindlessly talk about his dayÂ
the type of boyfriend where neither of you can cook and you both confusedly look at recipes on google like: ????? wtf is the difference between brown sugar and regular sugar
itâs his INSTINCT to hold your hand. no matter what. his hand just...gravitates to yous.
AND HIS LIPS JUST FIND YOUR CHEEK??? like itâs so natural to him to kiss your cheek when he sees you, even in public. itâs so adorable i--
THE TYPE OF GUY TO WIPE OFF FOOD FROM THE CORNER OF YOUR MOUTH AND STILL EAT IT AND SAYÂ âyou taste good!~â AND NOT EVEN REALIZE WHAT HE SAID. BUT WHEN YOU DO IT TO HIM HE BLOWS A FUSE
he loves to tickle you. like youâll be vibing, drinking whatever you drink in the morning and heâll come up to you all casually and kiss you cheek...and then heâll pounceÂ
he holds you close to his chest when he tickles you, partally because he likes feeling your laugh vibrate on his chest, and partially because itâs easier to not get tickled if heâs right behind you
his sister LOVes you and it just. makes him so happy
tanaka ryuunosuke.
you CANNOT remove his hand from your ass. it is permanently glued there. it is attached to you. yes, even in public.
number 1 hypeman! he will always support you, no matter what! you could be in a competition to raise the biggest beetle and heâll be there rooting you on and staying up late with you as you rear your award-winning beetle
you two lay next to each other on the couch/on his bed and heâll have his arm around you and youâll lay your head on his chest as you watch netflix shows
YOU, NISHINOYA, AND TANAKA? UNSTOPPABLE TRIO. POWER TRIPLET.Â
i donât imagine him being shy when he first kisses you; the first time he kissed you, you were literally just. existing and he literally just...couldnât hold it in...and he just went for it
literally CATAPULTS himself into you and kisses you senseless
yes you and saeko are besties she gives you ALL the tea about young tanaka
the type to take off his shirt more during practice if youâre there watching, and literally BURN red if you mention anything about his muscles
you once traced a vein in his arm and commented on how hot it was and he literally short-circuitedÂ
kiss his biceps. kiss his abs. kiss his cheek. please. itâs all he wants. heâs touch-starved
nishinoya yuu.
SUCH an excited boyfriend
like he seriously gets so hype doing ANYTHING with you pleaSE give this man an award. youâll be at the amusement park and the line to get into a ride will be three hours and heâll be like
âI get to spend three hours with you?!! fucking sick! absolutely radical!âÂ
heâs bold in public, but only because he wants to rub you in his teammates faces, but his ears will be Red
at home, heâs calmer :) he just loves to spend time with you, even if youâre sitting on a bench watching him practice receives for five hours straight in the blazing sun.Â
he just treasures your time so much, you treats you like a precious gem -- he will NEVER treat you wrong. deadass has no problem admitting when heâs wrong -- but if he thinks heâs right then he WILL stand his ground
heâs a passionate man, who loves just as passionately.
his favorite time to kiss you is after youâve taken a sip of a soda because he likes the taste of the syrup and the burn of the carbonation, but most of all because he likes the taste of your lips in combination with all of them
NIPS AT YOUR EAR. DEADASS JUST LOOKS AT YOU BRUSH A PIECE OF HAIR BACK WHEN YOUâRE DOING HOMEWORK AND IS LIKEÂ âfree real estateâ AND C H O MPS
the day nishinoya told everyone yall were dating, kiyoko stopped you in the hallway and deadass got on her knees and thanked you LITERALLY she was like âiâll buy you anything. give the word and itâll be yours.âÂ
sugawara koushi.
would kiss you on the first date. deadass. heâll just drop you off at your doorstep and youâre still high on adrenaline, and youâre lowkey hoping heâll kiss you and you get little disappointed when he doesnât and then when you least expect it. bam. his lips on yours
his smell oh god, he literally smells like fresh sugar cookies. itâs like as soon as you get anywhere near him his smell just invades you nose and. youâre powerless. you just wanna hug him
never smells bad. try me, bitch. NEVER.
his hugs are literally godâs gifts. he loves hugging you. he just completely envelopes you with his pretty setter arms and his smell takes up all the space in your head and nothing else exists for that moment, just you two
loves tucking your hair behind your ears or just moving it out of your face; doing homework and your bangs are in the way? not for long because heâll clip them up for you <3
heâs pretty mischievous and will playfully put his hand next to your head and lean down with such a HOT look in his eyesÂ
and heâll say some shit like âi wanna devour youâ and then heâll laugh afterwards and give you a kiss on the forehead and youâre standing there. like -.- o.o -.- o.o
whenever he feels insecure about his position on the team, youâre always there to comfort him and heâll just lay between your legs and rest his face on your stomach as you comb your fingers through his hair and scroll through tiktok
PDA? yes please. uh huh. mhmm. he doesnât care who sees his love for you he just wants to love on you baby. kisses you on the lips, no problemo
daichi sawamura.
you and suga are the only ones who can scare him when yall are mad lol
boyfriend where youâve dated for like a year but it feel like 50 have already passed. in a good way!
this relationship is so ungodly domestic. like from the first day itâs just pure comfort and heâs like your rock and youâre his anchor
you two bicker a lot but itâs lighthearted and you just feel so secure with him that poking fun at him and at yourself is just natural
daichi. gives. god. hugs. he does. itâs fact.Â
his arms are just so big and he has so much body warmth and he probably smells like some bullshit cologne like âsmoldering woodsâ and itâs just so. daichi
you two spend the night at each otherâs house so often itâs like you already live with each other and people always forget that you donât lolol
totally sleeps with his shirt off and only with underwear. isnât awkward about it either;Â when he wakes up he puts on sweats but still remains topless (not that youâre complaining)
you two are like. the strict parental couple, when you walk together whether it be down the street or in the hallways, you just look so right for each other itâs. mind blowing
doesnât mind kissing you a little in public but really thinks that stuff should be for private; so normally he just kisses your temple and always has an arm either around your shoulder or around your waist
WHEN THE TEAM SEES YOU KISS ON THE LIPS THEY GOÂ âEWâ EVEN SUGA AND ASAHI AFIEFHEWIF
asahi azumane.
literal fucking teddy bear. god please cuddle him. please kith him. please comb through his hair with your fingers and kiss his nape and kiss the back of his head. please i beg of you.
did NOT ask you out first. he wrote love letter to you and then waiting behind the gym because he thought being near the volleyball gym would give him some luck and them you got in front of him and he was. deer in the headlights
needless to say you asked him out and kissed his cheek. he DIED
even once yall are comfortable in the relationship he still needs reassurance every once in a while because heâs a little insecure, not that youâll leave him for someone else, but that heâs not good enough
his PDA skill are. subpar. he usually just holds your hand and thatâs it, but sometimes kisses the corner of your eye or nose and you just combust
OH RIOGEH TOTALLY DOES BUTTERFLY AND BUNNY KISSES. YES GOD YESSSSS
when yall cuddle he doesnât like spooning. he likes to be able to see your face and the expressions you make, so doesnât like being the little or big spoon; yall face each other and just lets your head lay on his arm even tho itâs numb. im: soft
kisses are so sweet, slow, and hesitant. he doesnât really kiss you often because he has terrible timing but...when he does itâs like the whole world just becomes still in that moment and nothing matters but his hands on your waist and yours in his hairÂ
#haikyuu#tsukishima x reader#tsukishima fluff#kageyama x reader#kageyama fluff#hinata shoyo x reader#hinata shĹyĹ#yamaguchi x reader#yamaguchi fluff#tanaka x reader#tanaka fluff#nishinoya x reader#nishinoya fluff#sugawara x reader#sugawara fluff#daichi x reader#daichi fluff#asahi x reader#asahi fluff#haikyuu headcanons
13K notes
¡
View notes
Note
Having a relationship w/ Oikawa based on a bet and the gf heard it when the seijoh 4 talked about it making oikawa panicked when he knows his gf heard it.. ahh angst to fluff? Hehe thank youuuu
---------------------------------------------------------------------------
This was fun to write. :)
Betting on You
Pairing: Reader x Oikawa Tooru
Genre: Hurt/Comfort, Angst, a lil fluff
He couldnât lose her, anyone but her. He shouldnât have accepted the bet. Needless to say, Oikawa Tooru has a lot of regrets right now. Opening up and being vulnerable to his partner was thankfully not one of them, even if it had ended up with them crying in each others arms.Â
---------------------------------------------------------------------------------------
Mumbling incoherently, Y/N reaches out next to her in the bed, trying to find the warm body that usually occupied the space next her. Frowning when she feels only the bedsheets, she opens her eyes and squints. Thereâs no one next to her.Â
âTooru?â she mutters softly, yawning and sitting up. He was always there, clinging to her, holding her close. Strange. She decides to wait for him, wanting his warmth to fall asleep with. The guy was like a living heater, which was useful during cold winter nights like this one.Â
Twenty minutes pass and he still doesnât come back. Furrowing her eyebrows, Y/N sighs and pulls herself to the edge of the bed, slipping on a pair of slippers. She shivers a little when the cold air hits her skin, but continues slowly towards the door to their shared bedroom. Opening it with a quiet creak, she immediately hears voices. A little confused, she quietly keeps walking, stopping at the doorway to the living room.Â
She tilts her head in confusion when she sees Tooru laying on the couch, tapping away at his phone. It appears heâs on a voice call on speaker.Â
âAlmost three months.â
âHonestly, none of us expected you to last this long.â
Her eyes widen as she hears familiar voices. Matsukawa and Hanamaki?
âYouâre still keeping him to that?â Iwaizumi? What were they doing this late at night? The clock on the wall tells her itâs 2 in the morning.Â
âObviously. I thought the money was pretty much guaranteed.â
âCan you blame us? Heâs never kept someone around for more than a month.â
âShut up.â Tooru's quiet voice reaches her ears. What money? What was going on?
âYouâre not going to win.â comes Iwaizumiâs annoyed voice. âItâs Y/N.â
âYeah, but before her it was also Mika-Chan and Yui-Chan and Hina-Chan and Aiko-Chan and-â
âAlright, I get it. Iwa-Chanâs the only one whoâs on my side.â he pouts, cutting off Hanamakiâs annoying high-pitched imitation of him.Â
âWe still donât know why. Youâre obviously going to lose the bet. Itâs inevitable.â Matsukawa claim confidently
...Bet?
âIâll win in a few days, if you havenât noticed. Nothingâs gonna happen in a few days.â Tooru rolls his eyes.
âAnd then youâll dump her?â
Y/N suddenly feels cold, and it has nothing to do with the weather. Dump her? Bet? WHat was going on? Her mind was racing. Tooru hadnât indicated that he was unhappy, or wanted to break up. He was always telling her how much he loved her. Was he lying? She felt a little sick at the thought.
âYeah, the bet was to keep someone around for more than three months. Youâll be done in a few days. Whatâre you gonna do then?â
What?
âA bet?â she says aloud, her voice hollow with shock.
Tooru jumps and drops his phone, quickly turning around to see his girlfriend looking at him in horror.Â
âY-Y/N-Chan...â he scrambles to his feet and ends the call, wondering how much she had heard. âI thought you were asleep?â he quickly moves towards her, reaching out to touch her shoulder. He freezes when she backs away, shaking her head in disbelief.Â
âA bet, Tooru? A bet?âÂ
âWhat-? Wait, Y/N...itâs not what you think-â
âKeep me around? You were dating me for a...bet?â her voice starts shaking a little, as she remembers how mere hours ago, he was holding her, assuring her how much he loved her.
âNo! I-â
âAm I a game to you? A bet? Are you fucking kidding me?â She nearly laughs, because of course he would only date her for a bet. Of course.Â
He frantically shakes his head, reaching out for her again, but thinking better of it when he glares at him with eyes full of unshed tears. His eyes widened. This wasn't supposed to happen. It wasnât supposed to go like this. âY/N-Chan, listen to me, please, let me explain.â he sounds panicked.Â
She clenches her jaw. âI should have seen this coming. Of course the Oikawa Tooru wouldnât go out with someone like me.â She lets out a bitter chuckle at his stunned expression. Before he can interrupt, she pushes on. âWhy would you, when you have girls, so much more perfect than me, throwing themselves at your feet all the time?â
âY/N-â heâs trying desperately to get a word in, wincing when she raises her voice to overpower his.Â
âMika-Chan and Yui-Chan and Hina-Chan.â she imitates, recalling the phone call. Tears sheâs tried to keep at bay finally start trickling down and Oikawaâs heart twists painfully, knowing that he was the one who caused it. âObviously, the only reason youâd consider me was because of a bet, a fucking bet, Tooru.â she cries out angrily.Â
âY/N-Chan, listen to me.â he says seriously, grabbing her shoulder and looking her in the eyes. âI love you. Iâve loved you since the beginning. The bet means nothing to me.â
Her next word feel like a punch to the gut.Â
âBullshit.â she whispers, before repeating herself louder. âUtter bullshit. You never loved me.â
âI did, I do!â he insists.Â
âIf you did, it wouldnât have taken a bet for you to ask me out!â she roughly shoves his hands off her. Taking a deep breath, forcing herself to ignore his hurt look. âItâs my fault too, isnât it? I shouldâve known better than to accept dating the Oikawa Tooru, the school heartthrob, notorious for playing around.â her words are laced with venom and self-pity. âThereâs always gonna be someone better. Someone prettier, skinner, funnier. I was stupid for thinking you would ever fall for me.â All her insecurities come spilling out, accumulated from months of dating him, enduring the comments whispered under the breath by jealous students, girls openly flirting with her boyfriend. She was stupid to think she would ever be enough.
Pushing past him, wiping her sleeves across her eyes, she storms back into the bedroom, Oikawa at her heels behind her. She grabs her pillow and a blanket, turning back around and moving to the couch in the living room. She does her best to ignore her boyfriend's desperate attempts to gain her attention, begging her to give him a chance to explain. She sets up the items and lays on the couch, pulling the blanket to her chin and turning to face the back of the couch.
She refused to sleep anywhere near him. When he doesnât stop talking she says coldly:
âLeave me alone. I want nothing to do with you.â
âNo.â
She pauses. âNo?â
âNot until you hear me out.â He crosses his arms.
âIâve heard enough.â
âItâs a misunderstanding. If youâd just let me explain-â
âIâll be out of your hair tomorrow.â
He was dreading that. He really does love her, so fucking much. He doesn't want to lose her.
âY/N-â
âIâm going to sleep.â She had never spoken to him in that tone before.
She hears a sigh after a few moments of silence, in which he realises that she was going to be stubborn till the end. Y/N hears him walk away and she buries her face in the blanket, silently crying to herself. She freezes when she hears the bedroom door close with a âclickâ and footsteps approaching her. She turns around a little, to see Oikawa sitting at the foot of the couch with his own blanket and pillow. He doesnât look at her, focusing on fluffing his pillow and pulling his thicker, warmer quilt over himself. He was equally as stubborn and wasnât going to leave her alone like this.
She scoffs and settles back down again, still crying. If he notices, he doesnât comment on it. The two lay in silence for a good thirty minutes. Y/N had stopped crying, but was still awake because how the hell was she supposed to fall asleep after what she had learnt?Â
Sheâs startled when she suddenly hears Oikawaâs soft voice. âI love you, you know? I really do. Ever since I saw you in Chemistry last year. You caught my eye so quickly, and I flirted with you for weeks before you got the hint.â he laughs breathily. âYou didnât want my attention like everyone else, and I was curious. It felt different to be the one trying to get someone elseâs attention.â he takes a deep breath, and she realises with a start that sheâs never heard him this vulnerable. He probably thinks sheâs asleep.Â
âI was planning to ask you out before and I told the others and they laughed at me.â he frowns at the memory. âThe assholes thought I was kidding, that I wasnât serious. Iwa-Chan was the only one who took it seriously. I donât blame them, cause Iâd only ever dated for fun before.â He breathes in deeply again, steadying his voice and Y/Nâs eyes widen when she realizes heâs holding back tears.Â
âSo when they bet that I couldn't last more than 3 months with you, I agreed, but only because I was going to ask you out anyway, and I intended on staying as long as I could. As long as youâd let me stay by your side.â He lets out a sad, watery chuckle, and Y/N feels her stomach drop. She never wanted to hear that sound from him again.
âI...shit, I donât want to lose you. I canât. Youâre the only one for me. I donât think Iâll ever stop loving you.â A strangled, muffled sob, reaches her ears, and it takes all of her willpower to remain still.Â
âIâm serious about you...about us. Youâre not a game, you never were. I just wanted to be with you. I want to be able to hold you again.â another muffled cry, as he buries his face in his hands. Heâd never willingly let anyone see himself like this, not even Y/N. He was glad she was asleep.Â
âIâm sorry. Iâm so fucking sorry, princess.â he stays where he is, sitting up leaning back on the couch, calming himself down, letting out soft hiccups every now and then.Â
Y/N is wide awake, thinking over his words. They had to be genuine, right? He had no idea she was awake. He had sounded so...real and vulnerable, nothing like the strong façade he usually put up in front of others. Taking her chances, she discreetly moves, eyes widening when she sees the state heâs in.Â
One of his hands is over his mouth, muffling his small sobs, Y/N wants to cry as she realises itâs probably so he doesnât wake her up. His other hand is clenched tightly in his brown hair, his knees drawn to his chest. His face was blotchy and red and wet with tears. Sheâs never seen him like this. She moves and he doesnât notice.Â
Sitting directly behind him, she gently grabs the hand in his hair, to which he nearly jumps out of his skin. Y/N would usually laugh at the reaction, if not for the way he was looking up at her. She eases his hand out of his hair and holds it, tugging him up to the couch. He hesitates, before climbing up, sitting on the cushion next to her.Â
âYou-â his voice wavers, and he tries again. âYou were awake?â
She nods, glancing at their connected hands, before staring at the ground. She hears his sharply take in a breath.Â
âY/N...love, I meant it. I meant every word, I swear.âÂ
âWeâll talk tomorrow.â she mumbles, tugging on his hand again, until they're both laying on the couch. She reaches over and grabs Oikawaâs quilt and pulls it on the two of them. She relaxes against him when his arms automatically wind around her waist and he buries his face in her hair, pressing small kisses on her. Each was an unspoken apology.Â
She knows heâs crying when she feels the tears hit her skin.Â
He knows sheâs crying when he can feel her shaky, irregular breaths.
They lay there, eventually falling asleep clutching each other tightly, both of them hurting on the inside. They would have to have a serious talk tomorrow, but both had a blooming hope that they would pull through.Â
Requests are open and Welcome. Thanks for reading!
#fanfiction#haikyuu fanfiction#haikyuu fandom#fanfic#oikawa angst#tooru oikawa#oikawa tĹru#hq oikawa#oikawa x reader#oikawa toru x reader#oikawa fluff#oikawa x you#haikyuu x reader#y/n#oikawa torĹŤ#oikawa x y/n#aoba josai x reader#aoba johsai#hurt comfort#angst#fluff#oikawa#haikyuu!!#haikyu x reader#x reader#tooru#oikawa tooru#hq x reader
3K notes
¡
View notes
Text
easy || jungkook angst/fluff
Summary:Â Date you, win a bet, get his rent paid off. Sounds promising enough, right? Jungkook shouldâve known that his ambitions would end in disaster, but even if he did, that still wouldnât have stopped him from pursuing you.
Warning:Â cursing, crude humor, fuckboy talk
Genre:Â college!au, fuckboy!au, bet!trope, angst, fluff
Pairing: Jungkook x female!reader
Premise: In which Jungkook accepts a bet from Taehyung to date the first girl that walks into the lecture hall and realizes that he bit off more than he could chew when starts to catch feelings. Now, he has to suffer the consequences of being an idiot.
Commission Request:Â @altus-gensâ
Word Count:Â 9,203 words
â
It's not like Jungkook planned to be one of the most sought after person in Yonsei University, but it somehow turned out to be that way. Truthfully, he basks in it, loves that so many people idolize him for doing the bare minimum. He was handsome after all and had a level of charm that surpassed the need to have a good personality.Â
He got into such a prestigious school through an athletic scholarship for Taekwondo, managed to convince his professors to pass him when he put in minimal effort, and there was no shortage of girls to call when he was feeling lonely for a night. He was the stereotypical 'it' boy on campus and maybe if he was a little bit smarter, he'd have a better choice of friends than the six idiots he always hangs around with.
"How about this," Taehyung starts, gum in his mouth, "the first girl who walks in, you have to successfully get in her pants."
Jungkook rolls his eyes. They were in a damn lecture hall and yet Taehyung had no shame bringing up sex. Typical.
âThis again, bro?â Hoseok sighed. âArenât you sick of bribing us to do weird shit for you?â
Taehyung smirked.
âNot at all, actually.â
"For how much?" Namjoon cut in, probably curious for the price point Taehyung would arrange this time. He was fired from his job just a week ago and could really use the money. "I'll do it if itâs enough to pay for my rent this month."
Taehyung scoffs, although knowing full well he could pay for all of the boysâ tuitions combined if he wanted to. He was the resident rich bachelor on campus after all.
"I'll pay it for a full year and your utility bills too if you're really down," Taehyung flaunts. "You just gotta have proof you actually managed to do it."
"Dude that's gross," Seokjin chimes in, "No one wants to send you proof of us doing it with a random girl."
Taehyung shakes his head.
"No, no, no," he says, clicking his tongue. "I phrased it incorrectly. Iâm not a fucking pervert."
âYou got us fooled,â Jimin mutters.Â
Taehyung leans in closer to the six boys and even Jungkook finds himself getting intrigued. Admittedly, he was a little curious considering he hasn't had a proper meal in weeks. He could really use having some extra cash for food without worrying about rent.
"You have to date the girl for like three months," Taehyung says seriously, "and I'll consider that as enough proof that you managed to actually do it since I know you guys are too horny to wait any longer than that to fuck."
They all look at Taehyung in disgust, Jimin even opting to hit him in the back of the head for being so vulgar. To be fair, they were all thinking of accepting Taehyung's bet regardless. It's not like they were new to leading girls on anyway.
"You gotta pay me more than that to fuck just any girl," Yoongi says, yawning in the process. He seemed the least likely to take up Taehyung's offer, but he was still game depending on the person.
"Then how would you feel," Taehyung starts, "if I told you guys that I could get you priority registration for next quarter."
The boys, even the ones who weren't interested, were now listening to Taehyung's every word.
"You mean," Hoseok gulps, "I could finally get that fucking Organic Chemistry class I need to get out of this hell hole?!"
Taehyung shrugs, an ominous smile on his face.
"Just the perk of having parents who have connections," Taehyung replies. âIâll only accept one of you guys to do it though. I donât wanna have you all fucking the same girl- thatâd be weird.â
Hoseok rolls his eyes.
âYeah, thatâs whatâs weird about this,â he grumbles.
âSo are you guys in or not?â Taehyung asks, his patience growing thin.
He lays back on his chair, a smoldering look on his face when they all nod. They were desperate for money after all.
"The next girl that walks in will be the subject of this bet and whoever calls dibs on her first will be the one to woo her,â he says with a stretch of his arms. âGood luck boys.â
They all turned to look at the door and Jungkook watches silently as guy after guy walks into the lecture hall. No girl yet.Â
Jungkook was hoping, from the bottom of his heart, that no familiar faces would walk in. If he had to deal with a past fling, heâd have to back out immediately. He never dealt with exes very well.
The guys are at the edge of their seats, praying for a cute girl to walk through that didnât already know about their horrible reputation. They were looking for an easy target, someone that could fall for their charms almost immediately.
And then, you walk in. You were clad in sweats with earphones on, rushing toward the front row seats of the lecture hall. You were chatting with your friends, yawning several times throughout your conversation with them. Jungkook couldnât help but smirk. There was nothing special about you to point out, in fact, you were just like everyone else. Strangely enough, he found that the most intriguing part about you.
"Nope, nope, nope," Jimin shakes his head repeatedly. "Can't, won't, never will. Sorry, Tae."
They all stare at him in confusion.
"What the fuck, what's wrong with her?" Yoongi asks, crossing his arms over his chest. Jimin faces away from you, not wanting to look at you any longer.
"No, nothing," there seems to be a blush forming on his face. He was hiding something.
âBullshit,â Taehyung furrows his brows. âBro, if sheâs crazy and one of us gets our dick bitten off, weâre all blaming you, so spit it out.â
Jimin just sighs.
"She's been giving me Professor Kwonâs notes for the past few weeks,â he starts, much to the confusion of his friends. âHer name is [Y/N]. It'll be really mean if I go after her, especially since she and I are kind of friends. Plus, I really need to pass this class. I failed last quarter..."
The boys groan. Jimin was no fun.
"She's not my type so I don't think I could really get into it either," Seokjin states, no longer interested in the prize after Jiminâs confession. Heâs been banking off of your notes from him too.Â
"Arenât we all old enough to know not to mess with peopleâs feelings?" Hoseok sighs.
They roll their eyes at Hoseokâs statement. Who was he trying to fool with the nice guy act? He probably fooled around with girls just as much as the other guys did.
"Yeah, Iâm backing out," Yoongi agrees, "and she hates me so there's that."
They all look at him questioningly and he puts his hands up in the air from their gazes.
"What? I just realized who sheâs talking to down there.â
He pointed at a girl discreetly, but no one seemed to recognize her.
âHer friend and I dated,â Yoongi continues, âand I broke up with her over text and blocked her without letting her respond. That whole friend group is pretty much pissed at me. I'd rather not have to deal with them again."
The guys look disapprovingly at him. Breaking up over text was harsh, but probably not the worst thing Yoongi has done to his exes.
"You're actually a piece of shit," Namjoon sighs. "I really do need my rent paid though..."
Jungkook nods in agreement. It's been almost impossible to balance Taekwondo practices, college papers, and working a part-time job all at once. If he could somehow find a way to quit his job for a while and get priority registration for classes, then he doesn't mind getting his hands a little dirty in the process. Plus, you were cute enough and he's sure you weren't too difficult to befriend as long as he doesn't mention Yoongi in any conversations.
"I'm in," Jungkook chides, finally saying something after such a long period of silence.
They all look at him with disbelief in their eyes. Jungkook was never the one to partake in Taehyung's bets. In fact, he was the one usually ridiculing them for participating. He must have been really desperate if he was willing to do it.
"I mean, it's all yours if you want," Namjoon replies, "I don't wanna turn it into a competition.â
âDonât worry dude,â Jungkook fist bumps Namjoon, âIâll quit my job and refer you for it.â
They nod at each other as if they were on the same wavelength.Â
âI knew I could rely on you,â Namjoon says, faking tears from his eyes. The boys groan in response.
âAlright,â Taehyung claps his hands. âIn exchange for providing me some mindless entertainment and going out with [Y/N], you will get your rent paid for the rest of the year and get early registration for next quarter. Sounds like a pretty sweet deal to me.â
Jimin shakes his head.
âI donât know about this, guys...â
Jungkook doesnât hear him and instead takes one last look at you. You catch him in the corner of your eye and you canât help but feel flustered at his serious expression.Â
âShould be easy enough,â he mutters to himself and turns his gaze back onto his friend.
âSo we have a deal?â Taehyung asks.
He smirks, shaking the outreached hand Taehyung held out for him. He steals another glance at you and he finds you staring right back. He gives you a wink.
âDeal.â
â
Jungkook slid into the seat next to yours in the campus canteen, his eyes filled with determination. His posture was laid-back, but it was a little too obvious that he was trying to act like he didnât care.
âHi,â he greets you in a breathy tone- girls loved it when he spoke with his breathy tone.
âHi?â
Youâd been sensing that someone was staring at you during the lecture, but you thought that was just the paranoia that came from being near such an intimidating group of guys. Turns out, you should always trust your instincts.
Jungkook had a boyish grin on his face that made you want to smile back but also stare at him in disgust.
âI heard you help Jimin with Professor Kwonâs notes,â he whispers mischievously. âIâm struggling myself, actually...â
Not really, but you know. This was the easiest tactic to approach you- tackle your similarities. You nod understandingly at his words, not quite getting that he was flirting with you.
âYeah I can send you the Google Drive folder,â you comply, taking your phone out. âBut you canât let Professor Kwon know or else heâll flip out. He doesnât want people to have the notes for some odd reason...â
You trail off but Jungkook just scoffs. You seemed clueless.
âThatâs not what I necessarily meant,â he says, a little shy this time. âI need a tutor.â
You furrow your brows at him.
âYeah, youâre gonna have to pay me for that,â you say seriously. The last time you offered to tutor someone for free, they ended up blaming you for their failing grade and screaming about it all over social media. You needed money to compensate for that emotional trauma. âMicroeconomics is hard to teach.â
âWell thankfully Iâm a good student,â Jungkook teases. You stare at him with a deadpan face.
âYou wouldnât need my help if you were a good student,â you say blankly, standing up from your seat. âMy hourly rate is 20,000 Won. Take it or leave it.â
Jungkookâs eye twitched. He had to spend his money to get Taehyungâs money? Well, the payout would be worth it in the end anyway. He reaches out a hand to you.
âIf youâd have me,â he says cheekily, looking up at you. You take his hand in yours and maybe for a second you felt your heart skip a beat, but that was soon over when you let go of him.
âYou have sweaty hands,â you say straightforwardly. You wipe your hand on your shirt and he coughs awkwardly at how unresponsive you truly were. Didnât Jimin say you were a nice person?Â
You take your barely-touched lunch tray and walk away from his pensive figure.
âWait, can I get your number?â he yells. You donât look back.
âAlright, whatever,â he mumbles to himself. âIâll just ask Jimin, I guess.â
Without even a second glance, you disappear from his sight. He sits back on his chair, heaving out a deep sigh. Sure, this wasnât the first girl that didnât care much for his advances, but you didnât even crack a smile or anything. This is going to be harder than he thought...
â
âShe hates me,â Jungkook whines to Seokjin as they walked down the university halls to their next shared class. âYesterday, I went up to her to get her number and I left with a fucking debt. Does that make any sense?â
âWell, maybe you shouldnât have taken on the bet,â Seokjin yawned. âNamjoon would have wooed her with his poetry by now or some shit.â
Jungkook rolls his eyes.
âYeah, Iâm sure sheâs interested in a dude who canât even put on a hat without causing an earthquake.â
Seokjin smacked him on the back.
âAt least heâd have the guts to say no to having a fucking tutor,â Seokjin replies. âYou dug your own grave, man. Now roll around in it.â
âDo you want me to succeed or not?âÂ
âI want you to not be a fucking dumbass, Jungkook,â Seokjin sighs. âDo you really wanna make your reputation worse than it already is?â
Just as Jungkook was about to reply, he catches a glimpse of you walking farther ahead in the university courtyard. You were a bit far but heâs sure he could make it if he hurries. He smacks the binder he held in his right hand onto Seokjinâs chest.
âYo, can you cover for me,â he asks hastily and Seokjin stares at him with a concerned gaze. He watches as Jungkook takes off his backpack and leaves it on the ground. Jungkook looked about ready to break out in a sprint.
âWhat the fuck, why?â Seokjin questions.
âJust tell the TA Iâm out for a bit,â he says in response, already running ahead to catch up to you. âIâm winning this fucking bet or Iâll die trying.â
Jin stands still, mouth agape. Jungkook really left him with his backpack and binder just to talk to you. He shakes his head. âI need to make new friends,â he thought to himself, picking up the discarded backpack and walking in the direction of the class Jungkook was planning to be late to.
You were walking with your earphones on, not noticing someone sprinting at you in record speed. You only turn your music off when Jungkook stops in front of you, his hands on his knees. He was panting heavily.
âHey,â he says through deep breaths. You nod at him awkwardly.
âWhy are you running?â
âI wanted to... catch up to you... and I thought... you were closer... but the run here... took... fucking... forever,â he says breathlessly. âWater. I need water.â
You take out a bottle from your tote bag hastily, handing it to him. He took it into his hands, grazing your fingers a bit. As he was about to start chugging it, you halted him.
âWaterfall,â you say curtly- you were still planning to drink out of it later after all.Â
He nods in response, a drop of sweat cascading the side of his neck. After he was done, there was practically no water left anyway. âIâm gonna have to refill it myself,â you thought begrudgingly. You stuff it back into your bag and wait until his breaths become more even.
âA bit out of shape, huh?â
He scoffs and gives you a glare, clearly offended.
âI actually have a Taekwondo scholarship, you know that? I just wasnât warmed up and Iâm naturally sweaty so itâs not like-â
You laugh a little.
âIâm joking,â you say, a smile adorning your face. He feels his face turn red and he canât help but purse his lips out of embarrassment. Jeon Jungkook couldnât take a fucking joke.
âO-oh,â he says shyly, avoiding your gaze. Why was he acting more like an idiot than usual? You hear the chiming bells of the university tower and stare at your phone to check the time.
âDonât you have a class?â you ask him. His eyes widen and soon he was dashing off again. He turns around mid-run, jogging backward to face you.
âMy number is 06-1313-9197,â he yells, loud enough for the other late students in the courtyard to hear. Most of them roll their eyes, knowing that Jungkook was flirting with another girl yet again. Youâre embarrassed by the amount of attention heâs getting, but punch his number on your phone anyway.
âText me,â he shouts. âIâll always respond to you.â
Now it was your turn to be flustered.
â
"Thatâs wrong,â you say, reaching over to Jungkookâs notebook and marking a large âXâ on his paper. âYouâre not supposed to apply that function for this problem...â
Jungkook stared at you with a tired face. He didnât think he was too bad at the mathematical aspect of Microeconomics, but it seemed like it was your lifeâs mission to make him look like an idiot. Of course, you caught every mistake that he made- even the ones he made on purpose just to see if you were really paying attention to his work and not bamboozling him.
âMy bad,â he mutters, copying down the same problem on a different sheet of paper. He didnât even get a chance to make a move on you today- not like he could make any big developments in the campus library anyway.
âIs it like this?â he asks, tilting his notebook to face you. You take a hard look at it and nod.
âYeah, just make sure you know the difference between these two formulas, or else youâll mess up on the midterm,â you say thoughtfully.
This was your fourth or fifth tutoring session by now? Truth be told he wasnât really counting. Each moment he spent with you kind of blended together and he didnât quite know if that was a bad thing or not.
âYou know youâre not even struggling,â you say, your nose buried deep in your textbook. âItâs not like youâre completely clueless like Jimin. It seems like youâre wasting money on stuff you already know.â
Jungkook laughs heartily, getting shushed by the people around him. He really was stupid, wasnât he?
âYeah, well, it was just an excuse to hang out with the pretty girl in class, you know?â he says as nonchalantly as he could. You stare at him for a second and he swears he feels his body freeze over. If looks could kill...
You just shook your head with a click of your tongue and got back to reading.
âThe pretty girl in class is most definitely not me,â you grumble. âIf you wanted, I couldâve given you Soobinâs number without all the added hassle of you trying to come talk to me-â
âWoah, woah, woah,â Jungkook stops you from saying anything else. He looked worriedly at your face. âI donât even know who the hell Soobin is, why would I want her number?â
You look at him and finally, you chuckle. âShe really does have a nice smile,â Jungkook thought to himself. It would be nice if he could make you laugh more often and not just on rare occasions like this.
âYouâre saying you donât know Yoongiâs ex?â you tease slightly. You were finally letting your guard down with him and Jungkook smirked. One wall down, another million more to go.
âBold of you to assume that I know any of Yoongiâs exes,â he says and you scoff. âHeâs an asshole when it comes to dating.â
You roll your eyes.
âIsnât that your whole friend group?â
He pouts. You knew of his reputation after all. Jungkook thought he could get away playing a nice boy act, but it didn't seem possible considering your knowledge of him. A little white lie couldnât hurt in the end.
âNot me,â he replies. âI choose my relationships pretty carefully.â
You take a glance at him before jotting down a few more words in your notebook.
âWell,â you start off, a little shy to admit what you were about to say, âI guess we both have that in common.â
He tilts his head rather cutely out of confusion.
âWhat do you mean?â
You cough awkwardly, adjusting yourself on one of the libraryâs notoriously squeaky seats.
âIâve never really had a boyfriend before,â you say quietly. His eyes bulge out from their sockets.
âYouâre lying.â
âNo, Iâm not,â you say, a hint of amusement in your voice.
âLike, youâve never been on a date or what?â
âI have,â you say hesitantly. âIâve been on a few but they just never led into anything serious. I was pretty focused on studying in high school so there werenât really any opportunities to get involved with someone. Plus, the guys who pursued me werenât very... attractive.â
Jungkook laughs loudly again, much to the dismay of the other students in the library. He liked that you didnât beat around the bush- it was easier to talk to you that way.
âAnd me?â he asks teasingly, laying his head on his arm that was atop the desk. He looks up at you with that boyish grin of his that gave you small butterflies in your stomach. You stare back at him, but only for a second. You ignore his watchful gaze and continue to flip through your textbook, trying to find the passage you last read. He keeps his eyes locked on you and you just couldnât resist.
âWhat about you?â you ask, feigning ignorance.
âAm I attractive?â he replies as bluntly as he could. You stop your movements and he chuckles.
âYouâre... cute,â you settle on that word. Cute. It was safe enough to not be misinterpreted too much. He sits up straight with a satisfied smirk. He takes his pen and draws a heart on the side of your notebook. He winks at you when you stare back at him, puzzled by his actions.
âYou are too.â
â
âTell me youâre lying,â Soobin whines disappointingly, shaking your shoulders. You were trying to eat lunch undisturbed in one of the campus cafes but your two friends seem hell-bent on making you suffer. âThereâs no way youâre friends with Jungkook.â
You sigh, attempting to rid yourself of Soobinâs grasp but to no avail.
âHeâs an asshole, [Y/N],â Gaeun sighs disappointingly. âI thought you were a feminist, why the fuck do you even tolerate him?â
You glare at her for a split second before going back to prying Soobin off you.
âJungkook has no respect for women or himself. It shows in how many shitty friends he has,â Soobin chants, still clearly bitter that Yoongi dumped her.
You shake your head, rolling your shoulders back when she finally lets go of you.
âJungkookâs not even as bad as you guys describe him,â you reply. âHeâs actually been really sweet.â
The girls take a glance at each other and burst in a fit of laughter.
âYou must be out of your damn mind,â Gaeun cries. You cower slightly at their words. Itâs not like you said anything that controversial, did you?
Soobin slaps Gaeun on the shoulder when she realizes how your face had soured. It wasnât right to judge you for your choice of friends so harshly, no matter how horrid said person was.
âAs long as it doesnât go past friends,â she says soothingly, but that only made you feel worse.
âWhy?â you ask a little hesitantly. âDoes Jungkook sleep around?â
Gaeun nods, a worrying glimpse in her eyes.
âHe's not exactly the type to kiss and stay...â
You nod understandingly. You werenât too clueless to believe Jungkook when he said he was âcarefulâ on who he dated. As long as you knew the boundaries that came with being his tutor, everything should be fine... right?
âDonât worry guys,â you say with determination. âIâm not the type to get played-â
âOf course you are!â Gaeun sighed. âGuys gravitate towards girls like you who lack experience. Jungkookâs a fucking weirdo, of course, heâs gonna try and-â
â[Y/N]!â a shout from across the cafe screams. That distracted you from the various insults Gaeun was spewing from her mouth. You get that she was being critical of Jungkook, but did she have to speak ill of you too?
You look around and catch Jungkook waving frantically at you. He stops at your table and takes a mere glance at your friends before setting his focus on you.Â
âDo you have time to help me out today? One of the papers for my writing class-â
âYou tutor him in writing now, too?!â Soobin exclaimed, mouth agape. â[Y/N], what the fuck.â
You try to ignore your friendâs overreaction, a little disheartened when Jungkook looked hurt at their words. He had started to shy away from them as if he didnât feel welcomed.
âNevermind, Iâll just ask you later-â
âActually,â you say standing up. âIâm free now.â
The two girls look back and forth between you and Jungkook, noticing the stars in your eyes when you looked at him. They did not like the thought of you two together at all.
âBut [Y/N]-âÂ
You ignored their words and start to walk away, hoping Jungkook would come catch up to you. You didnât quite know why their insistence on him being a bad person had made your blood boil. It wasnât like you werenât aware of his flirtatious tendencies, but hearing from your friends that you shouldnât pursue a guy that you liked-
You stopped in your tracks and feel heat climb up your face. Like.
No way you admitted that just now. Thereâs no possible way you actually like-
âHey, wait up,â Jungkook pants, his hand touching your shoulder. âWhy do you walk so fast for-â
He sees your shocked face and turns you towards him, his hands on your shoulder similar to how Soobin had shaken you just earlier. Except this time, it felt comforting. It made your whole body feel warm as if you were coated with a weighted blanket. Was he always this gorgeous?
âWhatâs wrong?â he asks, inspecting your face closely. âYou look like you just saw a ghost.â
âN-nothing,â you swipe his hands away and rush out the door of the cafe. He smirks at how flustered you look, maybe he did have an effect on you after all.
Jungkook takes a last glimpse at the two girls who sat in their seats, staring at him disapprovingly. He raised an eyebrow at them and shoved his hands in the pocket of his jeans, following after you. âTheyâll try to get in the way,â Jungkook thought to himself, âbut theyâre already too late.â
The girls clenched their fist out of annoyance. He was definitely trying to get on their nerves.
âThereâs something strange about whatâs happening,â Gaeun mutters.
âTheyâre up to something,â Soobin agrees. âI donât trust him at all.â
â
Itâs been a week since you last spoke to your friends, not really wanting to read the messages they bombarded you with about how you should stay for away from Jungkook. It was hard to take any of their advice seriously when they were just badmouthing him without reason. They based all their opinions on him from rumors around the school and Soobin always felt the need to compare him to Yoongi even though they both had very different personalities. Well, at least to you they seemed very different.
Frankly, you were sick of their nagging and just turned off notifications from that group chat altogether. Instead of sitting next to them during Microeconomics, you opted to sit with Jungkook in the back of the lecture hall instead of at the front with them. Jungkook had abandoned his own rowdy friend group to sit with you and flashed them quick smirks and winks whenever theyâd stare at him.Â
Slowly, Jungkook had started to become a constant in your day to day life. You walked to class with him, ate with him, played video games with him. It was sort of strange how used to you were of his presence, like you had known him your whole life. Jungkook snaps you out of your thoughts when he starts humming a little tune.
He draws a heart in the corner of your notes- which you find he has a habit of doing whenever he wanted to say something stupid.
âI donât get what heâs saying,â he pouts cutely. âItâs like heâs speaking a foreign language.â
You shake your head, not paying him any mind.
âWell maybe if you actually paid attention,â you mutter softly. He scoots closer to you and you feel yourself stiffen.
âBut youâre tutoring me later on anyway,â he says teasingly. âI get more bang for my buck if I know less.â
âBang for my buck,â you scoff. âWho even says that anymore?â
He points at himself nonchalantly and you canât help but crack a smile as you continue to focus on the professorâs words. You donât even cower under his gaze like you usually do when he stares at you with those puppy dog eyes.
âWhat do you want?â you ask, finally caving when Professor Kwon adjusted something in his PowerPoint slides. He smiles.
âI want to hold your hand,â Jungkook replies and you could feel your palms clam up. His flirtatious comments increased as time passed and you didnât really quite know whether he was just teasing you or if he was genuinely interested in you. You werenât very good at taking a hint.
âIâm writing right now...â you reply, slightly skipping a beat in your note-taking. He really was the ultimate distraction, wasnât he?
Jungkook pouts sadly, but you can tell an idea pops up in his mind when his eyes start to glimmer. He sits his hand on your thigh and you jolt back from the touch of his hand on the material of your jeans. He pulls away slightly, scared that he had made you uncomfortable.
âI just want to put my arm around you,â he asks innocently. âAre you okay with that?â
You calm yourself down and nod. For goodness sake, you werenât a child- why did a hand on your thigh make you so nervous for?!
âYeah,â you say, a little more confident despite your nerves. âGo ahead.â
He smiles softly at you and connects his hand to your waist, pulling you a little closer to him. It was comforting, not at all meant to be more than just a public display of affection. He finds himself getting lost in the lecture along with you, his hand playing with a loose thread on your shirt through it all. He didnât even look at his friends who were teasing him on the other side of the class or your own friends shooting daggers into his being.
At that moment, it was you, him, and Professor Kwon giving out a lecture that had half of the students already asleep. He smiled at how diligently you worked and how your breath would quicken when Professor Kwon switched the slides without a warning. It was the little idiosyncrasies like this that caught his attention, the kind of things that made him wonder where youâd been all his life.
The smile on Jungkookâs face disappeared when he came to that realization.
Fuck.
â
Jungkook rolls around the grass while you sit on the picnic blanket you two had set up. Midterms were over and grades would soon be announced. He wanted a much-needed distraction from the monotony of constant studying and you had suggested a small picnic in a nearby park. Of course, he agreed.Â
âWeâre free,â he groans. âFinally free.â
Jungkook stares hungrily at the assortment of food you had laid out for the two of you. He tries to reach a hand out to grab a bottle of lemonade but ultimately fails in the end. You giggle at his silliness, popping a grape in your mouth.
âYouâre welcome by the way,â you say jokingly. âDonât think you couldâve done it without me.â
He sits up to face you, bowing deeply as if you were a traditional empress.
âThank you,â he says, imitating a Joseon accent. He was watching far too many historical dramas recently.
âYouâre embarrassing me,â you say, attempting to straighten him out. âSit up.â
He complies, only after a few pulls from you, with a toothy grin on his face.
âSeriously, I donât think I could have gone through the first few weeks of Professor Kwonâs class without your notes,â he sighs, opening his mouth to signal that he wanted to be fed. You roll your eyes but placed a grape between his teeth anyway.
âYou have hands, you should know how to use them,â you mumble shyly.
You move to take another grape for yourself, but he grabs your wrist before you could. He intertwines his fingers into yours.
âWhy should I when my hands are holding yours~,â he says in a sing-song voice. It made you want to throw up at how cheesy he was, but you couldnât help but laugh along as he cringed at his own words. When was it so normal for him to hold your hands like this?
âYou canât go one sentence without flirting, can you?â you sigh, feigning annoyance.
âNot when it comes to you,â he replies, but you could feel sincerity laced between his laughter. âI canât resist flirting when it makes you all giggly like this.â
You purse your lips to prevent yourself from smiling too brightly. Jungkook and you were somewhat past the point of being just friends by now, but you were too much of a coward to label what you had with him. What if there was a chance that he was just leading you on?
Jungkook saw your furrowed brows. He rubbed circles on your hands with his thumbs to ease you.
âAm I making you uncomfortable?â he asks softly, about to let go.
âNo-â you say a little too quickly, clasping him closer to you. Your faces were inches apart now, much nearer than they were before.
âD-donât,â you attempt to say but youâre tongue tangled as you looked at his lips. He certainly does have nice lips...
âDonât what?â he asks in a lowly voice. You start to look around you- anywhere that wasnât him. The park was relatively empty but it still felt embarrassing to say anything too loud.
âD-donât let me go,â you say, your eyes on the picnic blanket rather than on him. His gaze was too intense to look at. Jungkook feels his heart clench. You were cute, too cute.Â
He shouldnât be feeling this attached to you, but he couldnât help it. Everything you did, every word that came out of your mouth- it had him wanting more from you than he could possibly handle. It was dangerous to feel this way.
âWhy donât you want me to let you go?â he asks nervously. He too was anxious for the answer. If you were to confess to Jungkook right now, heâd get the first part of the bet done, but thereâd be no turning back after your confession. He would have to lie to you from now on.Â
Jungkook closed his eyes, chanting to himself that itâs okay to like you for a little while, just as long as he doesnât get too attached in the end. He needed the money, he really did.
âBecause,â you start off with a sigh, staring at him now with glossy eyes. âI like you.â
Jungkook feels like he could do ten backflips in one go and it wouldnât even drain him of energy. The smile on his face was huge, his eyes curling into that half-moon shape that made you swoon.Â
Jungkook was relieved and if the boys asked, it was because heâd only have to date you for three months. Heâd die before heâd admit to them that he caught feelings because Taehyung, as generous as he was with his bets, would never give Jungkook the money unless he cleanly broke up with you. It was one of his unspoken rules.
âI like you too.â
You smile at him and he canât help but pull you close, his lips hovering over yours.
âCan I?â
You nod.
His lips graze yours slightly but he pushes a bit closer when he feels you lean into his touch. He kisses you again, and again, and again, but you pull away when his tongue had started to prod at your lips. Your face was flushed,  embarrassed to be doing this in such a public place.
âMaybe later?â you say, panting slightly. He gives you a cheeky grin and nods.
âAt my place?â he asks with a wink.
You hesitate, letting go of his arms, twiddling with your fingers. You wanted to set clear labels on what your relationship was. You didn't want to accidentally get caught up in a friends-with-benefits situation and be all shocked when Jungkook ends up breaking your heart.
âSo weâre dating now, right?â you ask cautiously, looking at him with a worried glint in your eyes.Â
Jungkookâs mouth opens to speak but no words come out. He thinks a little harder about the whole situation... He was getting good grades, spending some quality time with a girl heâs clearly attracted to, and having his rent paid off all in one? He was killing three birds with one stone. It shouldnât be too big of a problem to catch feelings for now, right? Itâs not like any of his relationships lasted longer than a couple of months anyway.
He nods, cupping your face lightly.
âYeah,â he hesitates. âWeâre dating.â
Jungkook wasnât aware, as he gives you another light peck, that it wasnât possible to have his cake and eat it too.
â
It happens naturally. You coming in and out of his apartment that he shared with his friends, you tangling your legs with his underneath the sheets of his bed. It was hard to imagine a life where you didnât wake up with him by your side. You were so wrapped up in his touch, so wrapped up in the sweet words he would whisper into your ears, that you spent most of your time with him.Â
You werenât really up to date with your friends anymore and he didnât really hang out with his either. Jungkook shared an apartment with Seokjin and Hoseok, and so the only contact he had with the other boys was when they visited those two. He shouldâve known to take you back home when all the boys bombarded into his living room, where you sat with him watching TV.Â
âThe lovebirds are at it again,â Taehyung coos, a mysterious glint in his eyes. âThe honeymoon stage hasnât passed quite yet, has it?â
Jungkook chucks one of the sofaâs throw pillows at his friend, obviously annoyed. What the fuck did Taehyung think he was doing?
âQuit it,â he mutters. You were sitting next to Jungkook, his arm around your shoulder protectively
âWhy?â Yoongi yawns. âAnyone can see how incredibly in love you two are.â
You didnât quite like the smirk he gave the two of you. This didnât feel like regular teasing... it felt like he knew something that you weren't aware of. It made you curl your toes out of fear.
âGuys,â Jimin says calmly. âStop it.â
The boys shrug their shoulders as if they said nothing wrong.
âWeâre just pointing out how cute they are together,â Taehyung noted, âItâs not like weâre lying to her or anything-â
âYeah, or leading her on or anything like that-â
âI think I should go,â you say hurriedly, uncomfortable at how tense the atmosphere was. Jungkook was clenching his fists, about ready to start a fight any second. Knowing his strength, you didnât want anyone to walk around with a bruised eye because you couldnât handle a few jokes- if thatâs what Taehyung and Yoongi think theyâre making. Harmless jokes.
âIâll take you home,â Jungkook announces, standing up with you. Namjoon pulls him down back on the couch.
âLet someone else take her,â he says sternly. âWe need to talk.â
Jungkook was about to protest until you spoke up.
âI can get home by myself just fine.â
âHoseok and I can take you,â Seokjin insists, pulling the unassuming man up with him. âWe donât mind.â
Hoseok gives you a lopsided smile and you return an equally awkward one.
âOkay, thatâs settled,â you say, clapping your hands. You walk over to Jungkook. âIâll text you later okay?â
He nods, grabbing your hand and kissing it lightly. Yoongi scoffs and Taehyung glares at Jungkook. The dirty glances they were giving each other... You didnât like it at all.
âLet me know when you get home, okay?â
âOkay.â
â
The walk to your apartment was unnecessarily awkward, Hoseok and Seokjin were talking too much and you talked too little. You tried to respond to their every quip, but you werenât in the mood for chatting after that whole mess.
âYou okay, [Y/N]?â Hoseok asks worriedly. âDonât think too much about what those idiots said back there, theyâre like that all the time.â
You nod, keeping your eyes on the ground. There was something chipping away at the back of your mind, something you wanted to get out of your chest.
âWould you say Jungkook and Yoongi act similarly?â you hesitate to say, âlike with relationships?â
The two boys exchanged nervous glances at each other.
âWell, it depends,â Seokjin starts, choosing his words specifically. âWhat about relationships specifically?â
âDoes he...,â you start off, not knowing the right phrase without sounding too harsh, âplay around with girls? Like how Yoongi played around with Soobin?â
Hoseok looked at you with a raised brow.
âWhoâs Soobin?â he asks before getting punched in the arm by Seokjin. âWhat the fuck bro!â
Seokjin clears his throat.
âWhat Hoseok meant to say,â he starts, glaring at his friend a little too harshly, âis that Yoongi never really introduces us to his girlfriends. You, on the other hand, are one of the few girls Jungkook actually took the time to invite over.â
âYeah,â Hoseok chimes in. âHeâs not exactly the most chivalrous, but he wouldnât ghost someone like Yoongi did.â
Somehow their words werenât enough to satisfy you. There was still something off in the conversation that transpired between the three boys- as if they were all keeping something from you. You stopped abruptly in front of your apartment complex, finally making eye-contact with the two boys.
âDo you think...â you start, a slight quiver in your voice, âthat Jungkook is cheating on me?â
The two boys let out a deep breath that you didnât even notice they were holding and laughed joyously together. They cackled as if what you said was the funniest thing they had ever heard in their life. Seokjin wipes a stray tear from his eye.
âY-you think Jungkookâs cheating on you?!â
You nod, a little embarrassed at their reaction. Hoseok shakes his head, sighing out of his laughter.
âTrust me,â Hoseok starts, his breath evening out. âJungkook would never cheat on you.â
You start to giggle along with them until a serious look suddenly takes over Seokjinâs features. He faces you fully.
âBut listen [Y/N],â he starts. âIf Jungkook hurts you, just know that he does love you. Like, undeniably. He does.â
âAnd weâre not just saying that as his friends either,â Hoseok continues. âWe know how heâs like and we can tell that he really does like you.â
You smile at the two, feeling a small sense of comfort at their words.
âThank you, guys. I mean it.â
They pat you on the back.
âAnything for Jungkookâs girlfriend.â
â
You walk through the campus cafeteria, eyes searching for a free table that you can sit alone in. Jungkook had Taekwondo practice so there would be no lovey-dovey feeding time with him.Â
Heâs been a lot tenser since the living room incident (which was already a week ago) and it seemed like he got more agitated as the days passed. Not towards you directly, but heâd always mutter slight insults whenever Yoongi or Taehyung passed by. It made you worried that you had done something to possibly drive a wrench into their relationship without even knowing it.
âWhatever,â you thought, âIâll talk about it with him when he comes over later.â
You arenât able to find a seat, though, when you feel dainty fingers wrap around  your elbow to pull you back lightly.
â[Y/N],â Gaeun says in a low voice. âWe need to talk.â
It wasnât like you had been ignoring them deliberately, though that was definitely the case at the start. You just couldnât find the time to really hang out with them as much as you used to since you were with Jungkook most of the time. It was like that too when Gaeun and Soobin were in relationships, so you never really felt bad about doing it yourself.
âYeah sure. I miss you guys,â you smile at her, but she doesnât return it back.
âCome with me.â
Gaeun leads you to a table near the back of the room, where Soobin was sat up against the wall with her own tray of food. You sit down in front of her and Gaeun takes the seat next to Soobin.
âGood, youâre here,â Soobin says, apprehension laced in her voice. âWe need to talk about Jungkook.â
You roll your eyes.
âNot this again-â
â[Y/N],â Gaeun warns. âListen.â
You keep quiet, a little intimidated of how scary their expressions were.
âItâs all a bet,â Soobin says sternly.
You furrow your brows at her. She tends to speak vaguely when you needed her to be specific the most.
âWhat?â
âItâs a bet, [Y/N],â Gaeun repeats for her. âJungkookâs only dating you because Taehyung said heâd pay his rent off if he did.â
You clench your fist on the table. How could they sit there and spew lies so easily?
âWhat are you guys-â
âThose dicks do this all the time,â Soobin rambles. âThey play stupid games with girls just to fucking break their hearts later on and-â
âI donât believe you,â you say confidently. âJungkook would never do that to me. Besides-â
Gaeun didnât even wait until you stopped talking to play a recording on her phone. The voices were familiar enough to recognize.
âSo youâre telling me that Jungkookâs just fucking around with [Y/N] because he wants priority registration? You have to be fucking joking...â
You could tell from the sound of the personâs voice that it was Soobin. It sounded like she was putting on her clothes.
âOf course not. Heâs doing it for priority registration and his rent getting paid for the rest of the year. Iâm not joking when I say Tae goes big with his bets. He likes to flex his money on us like that.â
Your jaw drops at the sound of the manâs voice. It was Yoongi. You were sure of it.
âAnd you guys donât feel bad? Like at all?â
âWhy should we? Jungkookâs planning to break up with her next week anyway so she doesnât catch feelings for too long. Itâs not like they were gonna last past the three-month deal...â
Gaeun paused the recording when she sees you bite your lip so harshly that blood starts to surface. This didnât feel right. It didnât feel real.
âI hooked up with him last weekend,â Soobin admits, shame written all over her face. âHe was spewing stuff about Jungkook spending all his time with you and not really hanging out with the boys like he used to.â
âYou still hook up with Yoongi? After all he did to you?â you ask, not meaning to come off aggressive but undoubtedly did.
âLook,â Gauen starts, taking the heat off of Soobin. âShe was just drunk and looking to have fun. I was with her that night and I was talking to Namjoon. He...â
Gaeun trailed off, but you were sick of it. Sick of being kept in the dark from something you shouldâve known all along.
âWhat?â
âH-he told me that all the boys were getting tired of him playing around with you,â she says, twiddling with her fingers. âHeâs supposed to break up with you today. Some of the guys think heâs just prolonging it to fuck with you and theyâre getting really annoyed-â
You bite back the tears threatening to spill over any minute now.
âHoseok and Seokjin told me to trust Jungkook. They said he wouldnât hurt me-â
âDid they also tell you that their rent gets paid too if Jungkook pulled through with the bet?â Soobin replies angrily. âBecause they live together, donât they?â
You open your mouth but no sound comes out- just a small whimper. Your lips start to quiver and you bite your lip again to calm yourself down. When you had collected your thoughts, you glared up at the two girls.
âAnd you didnât tell me this earlier?â
Soobin scoffed.
âYou were fucking ignoring us too, how were we supposed to tell you?â
âStill it wouldnât have killed you to-â
âDonât take your anger out on us,â Gaeun warns, her finger pointing at you. âJungkook is the one to blame. We told you from the start that he was bad news.â
You pursed your lips and Gaeun put her finger down, feeling guilty that she lashed out on you when obviously you were just processing the information.
âHey, Iâm sorry-â
âWhy me?â you ask with teary eyes. âWhat did I even do to them to deserve this?âÂ
They glance over at each other for a long while before Soobin breaks the silence. You had the right to know, but at the same time, they knew it would break you.
âItâs a sick game that they play where they just choose someone randomly...â Soobin starts off gently handing off the next few words to Gaeun, âand you were just the first girl to walk into Professor Kwonâs lecture hall. He thought youâd be...â
âEasy,â Soobin finished.
Just as they predicted, you had burst out in tears.
â
Jungkook opens the door to your apartment, using the spare key you had given him a month earlier since he tended to visit often. It was more convenient that way.Â
He was freshly out of his Taekwondo garb, still sweaty, but otherwise clean from taking a shower at the campus gym. He found it strange at how dark the room was, but he knew you were on the couch from the noticeable lump of a blanket on it.
All Jungkook wanted was to cuddle with you and fall asleep in your arms after such a harrowing day. Lord knows he needs your warmth right now.
He smiled as he made his way towards you, but stops in his tracks when you sit up from where you laid. He couldnât quite see you in the darkness so he walked to the light switch to turn the lights on. His heart broke at the sight of you.
Tears stained your cheeks, your eyes red and puffy from all the crying. You looked a mess and his blood boiled at the thought of someone hurting you.Â
âWhat happened?â he asked, rushing over to you and cupping your face in his hands. You push him away.
âYou donât have to act anymore,â you say softly. âI can handle it.â
He looks at you with furrowed brows.
âWhat are you talking about-â
âI get that you really need the money,â you say through bated breaths, âI get that financially, it would have really helped, but did you really have to hurt me to do that?â
Jungkookâs breathing stopped. Everything was happening too quickly, his world crashing down when you uttered those words. He knew what this meant, knew that now you would see past his lies. Jungkook couldnât have you finding out this way.Â
He kneeled in front of you, attempting to wipe away the tears from your eyes but you push him off.
â[Y/N] no-â
âIt couldâve been anyone,â you whimper, trying to look up at the ceiling to prevent any more tears from falling down. âAnyone couldâve walked through that door and you wouldâve been okay with it.â
âThatâs not true-â he interjects but you stop him.
âA-and you flirted with me all the time âcause you knew that I wasnât used to it,â you say, your voice quivering. âYou took advantage of me.â
Jungkook shakes his head rapidly, eyes pleading for you to let him speak. It hurt seeing you refuse to even look at him, to have your eyes so filled with sadness because of what he did to you. He fucked up, he fucked up so bad.
âNo, you have to listen-â
âThey told me not to trust you,â you whimper somberly. âThey told me and I didnât believe them because I... I was delusional or something. I thought that someone like you could actually like someone like me-â
His heart broke. It wasnât you that didnât deserve him. It was him. All him.
âPlease donât say that-â
âDid you come here to seal the deal? To finally break up with me?â you ask sadly. âAre you happy youâll get the classes you want next quarter, Jungkook?â
He clenches his teeth. Jungkook knows youâre mad, knows you have a right to be, but it feels like heâs being cornered by you. Why wonât you give him the chance to speak?
â[Y/N], no,â he says sternly, âYou have to trust me when I say that it went past just a bet. I like you. Genuinely, I like you.â
There was no point in lying any longer. You deserved to know the truth, but he needed you to know all of it- not just the information your friends cherry-picked to fit their narrative. He tried to speak again, but you wouldnât let him.
âHow could you,â you whimper. âHow could someone be so cruel?â
Jungkookâs heart breaks at the words. He shouldâve seen this coming. How could he delude himself into thinking heâd be okay if you find out- that heâd be fine seeing you heartbroken? He was disgusted with himself.
âIâm sorry [Y/N],â he whispers. âIâm so sorry.â
You shake your head, your vision getting blurry from the tears. He clasps your hands in his, knowing that it used to soothe you whenever you felt worried over something, but you just wailed harder at his touch. He didnât know what to do, he didn't even know where to start.
âStop pretending like you care,â you cry. âPlease. It hurts.â
âIt was a bet,â he admits and he breaths through the words to prevent himself from getting too emotional, âbut I promise that my feelings are genuine. You have to trust me.â
âTrust you?â you ask crudely.
You stare at him, slowing your breaths to ease the crying. There was a certain emptiness in your gaze and it scared him. It was awfully frightening having you looking at him with a certain animosity that was not there before. Like he was a stranger.
âI canât do that anymore, Jungkook,â you say softly, âbecause I hate you.â
â
A/N: Gasp A double update?! Say it isnât so... I had so much fun writing this!!! Probably one of my favorite fics Iâve written in a while because I love this trope. How do yâall feel about Jungkook? Forgive or forget? Let me know!! Thank you @altus-gensâ for requesting this story, I hope you like it :)
Please leave any comment, critiques, or just random thoughts about my story! Iâm planning my murder mystery series rn and Iâm so excited (I might... do an album giveaway along with it...) I really love the direction Iâm taking this blog in and I hope you guys are excited for the stories to come~~Â
buy me a coffee?
#jungkook angst#jungkook fluff#bts angst#bts fluff#bts scenarios#bts scenario#jungkook scenarios#jungkook scenario#bts imagine#bts imagines#jungkook magine#angst#fluff#kpop angst#kpop fluff#bangtan boys#bts#jeon jungkook x reader#jungkook x reader#jeon jungkook#jungkook#kook#bts jungkook#bangtan angst#bangtan fluff#yoongi imagines#bangtan scenarios
7K notes
¡
View notes
Note
Yes big brain to your Stancy post. If Steve was the one who acted like Nancy people would constantly bring it up regardless of how much time passed. They wouldn't even doubt him cheating like they do with Nancy.
See I didn't like Stancy and I was rooting for Jancy but the way it happened made me absolutely sick. I couldn't even enjoy them getting together because it was literally cheating and nobody really acknowledges in the show and even in the fandom a huge part still denies it. They blame Steve for Nancy's behavior, because of s1 Steve but they fail to realize that one year has passed and he isn't the same person in the beginning of s2 than in s1. And then they blame him for not being supportive enough, even though he goes to the dinners with the Hollands. They bring up the library talk as evidence how unsupportive he is while failing to realize he tries to protect Nancy from herself. She wants to go after the government you know the people who killed Benny for simply helping Eleven and are known for watching over them, he is terrified something will happen to her and their families if Nancy acted on that. Him trying to distract her isn't him being a shitty boyfriend, people tend to forget Barb died in HIS pool it's probably a coping mechanism to simply try to live a normal life.
The only shitty thing he did in s2 is leaving her alone at the party after she told him he was bullshit, he should have made sure she is okay regardless but that's it.
Nancy on the other hand pretended to love him for a year, she admitted to emotionally cheating while talking to Jonathan, she said to him she waited for him to make a move and then got mad when he brought up Steve you know her actual boyfriend. I swear if Steve would have said that to another girl while dating Nancy people would have lost their minds.
And she never apologized for it either she let Steve know till this day he was the major reason why things ended. I mean Nancy always has problems with accountability, the way she treats people in the show is sometimes gross and I'm sick that the show overlooks her flaws and paints her as perfect. And I'm also sick for being called a misogynist for pointing out that Steve didn't deserve Nancy's treatment or in general for calling out her flaws.
Steve probably doesn't even love Nancy, he loves the romanticized version she played for a year with him. Why else would he try to win her back with his dream, which is her nightmare. I hope he realizes in s5 he deserves someone who actually loves him and shares the same dreams with him.
anon, i am in love you. you get me in a way no one else ever will
people like to pretend that nancy didnât cheat, but she did. nancy was very adamant in murrayâs basement that she loved steve, and they were together. and that night she slept with jonathan.
i never cared much for either stancy or jancy, i donât really care about ships in the show, like i can just read fics, you know? but s2 very much put me off canon jancy. the choice to have nancy lust after jonathan the entire time she was dating steve is fucked, and uncomfortable. itâs like some weird nerd fantasy, that the girl dating the popular jock actually wants the nerdy loner.
and itâs so weird how people act like s1 steve and s2 steve are the same person!! itâs been a year! and with steveâs behaviour in s1, nancy willingly chose to get back together with him, knowing that he had aided his friends in slut shaming her, so her behaviour in s2 canât be explained by saying steve was an arse in s1 because she chose to still date him.
and the way people talk down steveâs trauma in s2 drives me insane! like steve is scared the government will come after them and their families if they tell anyone. nancy never explained her little plan to get proof and anonymously share it, she just said she wanted to tell barbâs parents the truth, which sounds like a fun way to get killed.
and with leaving her at the party, iâm not even sure he does! we see him pop outside to cry, and jonathan looking back at him, and the next day jonathan knows exactly what the argument was, and what nancy said, and says that steve told him to take nancy home. and jonathan doesnât seem the type to lie to make steve look better! so i honestly believe him.
that scene in the hotel is literally insane, and people use it for cute jancy edits?? itâs nancy admitting sheâs wanted jonathan for the entirety of her relationship, and then getting pissed when jonathan says âwhat about your boyfriendâ. what about that screams healthy relationship? and the way they get together is insane too. what shared trauma do jonathan and nancy have that steve doesnât also have? and trauma is not a good basis for a relationship, whenever we see jonathan and nancy outside of end of the world events, they donât even seem to like each other much? she literally calls him oliver twist.
nancy honestly treats every single person in the show like shit, and you can say itâs because of trauma, but she treated barb like shit too, so i think at some point weâre just gonna have to accept that that is the way nancy is. she likes people when theyâre useful to her, and if they arenât, sheâs snide and kind of cruel. (nancy changing this about herself could actually be a really cool character arc, but the show will never admit that nancy is anything but perfect, so weâll never get it)
and yeah, itâs insane that steve still thinks heâs to blame a year and a half later when she literally cheated on him. like steve was as supportive as he could be, what do people expect him to have done? say, yeah we absolutely should reveal government secrets and probably get killed? he was trying to help nancy in the only way he knew how.
and with nancys dream, sheâs never told steve about it. we see her say to jonathan that she doesnât want to end up like her parents, but she never has that convo with steve. probably because he was just a placeholder for her until she could get jonathan, so why get attached?
honestly, i donât hate nancy, i think sheâs a really cool character (or could be if she wasnât written by men), but the way people girlboss-ify her behaviour, and the way she treats other people is just horrible. and the more people excuse her actions, the more i dislike her. and i donât hate stancy or jancy either. there are some fics of the relationships that i love, i just think in canon theyâre honestly horrific, and the love triangle never shouldâve been brought back in s4.
#also. sorry it took so long to answer this#stranger things#steve harrington#nancy wheeler#jonathan byers#anti stancy#anti jancy#asks#anon
25 notes
¡
View notes
Text
in which harry joins a new gym and youâre a trainer there.
a/n: happy new years loves! wishing you all a lovely and happy 2021! first fic of 2021 and im so excited to write more stories this year! to start the new year, here is boxer!harry for you, and this is for my very own timetravelathon fic challenge! if youâd like to join, please let me know, Iâd love to have you on board! this story takes place in the 1990, and i know some of the songs mentioned werenât released specifically in 1990 (just a few years after), but just pretend it was lol because theyâre too good to not mention in this story hehe, but happy reading and pls reblog and leave feedback <3
thank you to @sunflowers-styles for beta reading this for me, love you always!
WORD COUNT: 22.6k of (kinda) boxer!harry x trainer!yn filled with angst and smut
WARNINGS: mentions of abandonment and bloodÂ
COME INTO MY INBOX AND LETS TALK ABOUT â143â iâd love to know your thoughts!
pls rb to share! <3
16 August 1990
With every move he made, Harry felt a bead of sweat drip down the side of his face, down his back, and trailing down his chest. Small huffs of breath were released from his mouth, trying not to make it known that he was exhausted, but he continued until all of his energy was used up through the very end.Â
âCâmon,â he muttered to himself, anticipating the certain words to be yelled out.Â
Heâd been going at it for a while now, muscles aching as he felt like he was about to collapse any minute. But he was determined to finish, to feel the satisfaction running through his veins, knowing that this was his best round.Â
âAnd time!â His trainer yelled at him, clicking the stop button on his timer.Â
Harry got in one last punch before putting his arms down, the soreness made his limbs feel like jello as he shook them out. The black leather punching bag was swinging back and forth, the chain that held up the speed bag rattled and slid against the metal bar. Harry loved that sound because it indicated that he was going his hardest to where the chain couldnât keep up.Â
âNice one, kid.â Henson, his trainer said as he fist-bumped Harryâs red glove.Â
Harry simply nodded in appreciation, too exhausted to speak as he placed his gloves onto his knees, leaning down as beads of sweat dripped down onto the matted floor. Several harsh breaths came out of his mouth as he sniffed in the fresh oxygen that was mixed with the musky scent of the gym.Â
Benny, Harryâs best friend, exited the ring, wiping the sweat off his forehead with his arm before walking towards Harry, who was still leaning on his knees. Benny tapped Harryâs glove, making him stand up straighter, and Harry patted Bennyâs back.Â
âGood job out there, mate,â Harry told his best friend. Benny was in the ring with one of the other trainers, Mike, doing one of the nonstop routines. Harry liked training with Mike in the ring, but not when it was for cardio and timed rounds; he liked when it was chill, so he knew how hard he had to hit the target, which were the pads. But for the timed rounds they did, Harry was usually by the speed bags and Mike was in the ring.Â
âYou too, man,â Benny breathed out with a smile.Â
They headed over to the bench to take their gloves off and catch a breather. The pair would do a cardio day every Thursday to get a good, sweaty workout in, and it always left them exhausted, but definitely much stronger.Â
âHey, Iâm not gonna be able to workout next Thursday,â Benny mentioned. Harry furrowed his brows as he put the end of the strap between his teeth to pull it off from the velcro, taking one glove off.Â
âWhat? Why not?â Harry asked confusingly. They never really had to call off a workout, especially Thursdays, unless one of them was sick, but other than that, neither of them missed any workout days.Â
âIâm taking the wife on a date,â Benny smirked, clearly very excited to spend some time with his wife, but Harry wasnât amused.Â
âOn a Thursday? Why canât you do that on Friday?âÂ
Benny rolled his eyes. âBecause we both called off Friday, so weâre having a four day weekend to ourselves,â he explained.Â
Harry huffed, clearly not entertained. âGuess soâŚâÂ
Benny knew Harry was always like this, ever since they were younger. The two had been so close ever since they met, now that Benny had a wife, Harry always felt like the third wheel and that he rarely saw Benny, however, that wasnât entirely true Benny exercised with Harry every night during the weekdays, and sometimes they even grabbed a bite to eat afterward when Benny could use that time to be with his wife, Marianne.Â
Harry had an overwhelming fear of abandonment, it led him to have anxieties about how Benny could just get up and walk out of his life, even though he wouldnât. Maybe it was why Harry is so attached to him; heâs the closest to Harry and it would completely destroy him if Benny ever decided that he didnât want to be his friend anymore. That fear only grew based on an unfortunate turn of events that happened in college, four years ago, and it left Harry to pieces. Benny had never seen Harry so broken where he literally had to pick him up and take care of him. He never wanted to see his best friend like that ever again because it absolutely crushed him.Â
âItâs two days that weâre not going to be seeing each other, chill out. Didnât know you were that in love with me,â Benny joked, hoping to lighten up Harryâs mood. Luckily, it worked because Harry breathed out a chuckle, throwing his towel at Bennyâs face.
The two collected their belongings and walked over to the trainers as they always do at the end of every workout to have a light chat with them. Henson and Mike told them they did a great job and asked to confirm if they were still on for tomorrow, which Benny and Harry both agreed to. Benny also mentioned about not being able to work out next Thursday and Friday, including the reason why he wasnât able to.Â
Henson and Mike looked at each other as if they were keeping something from the two. Harry titled his head and looked at Benny as if he was asking if he knew the reason why they were looking at each other weirdly, but Benny just shrugged his shoulders, just as clueless as Harry.Â
âAre you gonna tell us why youâre acting suspiciously?â Harry asked. The two trainers both sighed defeatedly.Â
âAbout thatâŚâ Henson started. âNext FridayâŚweâre closing,â he added.Â
âLike, closing for the day?â Benny asked innocently, hoping they didnât mean what he really thought.Â
âNoâŚfor good,â Mike stated. Harry and Bennyâs eyes both widened, words coming out of both of their mouths profusely. They were both talking over each other, disagreeing and not accepting the fact that the gym was shutting down.Â
âYou canât just do that-â
â-No, we refuse to let you close down-â
âAlright, guys! Settle down. Youâre starting to act like kids, for god's sake,â Henson interrupted the tantrum that was about to start.Â
âYou guys canât just do that!â Benny exclaimed.Â
âWhy are you guys even doing that?â Harry asked.Â
Mike sighed. âWe mutually decided that it was best to close down becauseâŚwe really need the money. My rent has been skyrocketing crazy high because more people have just decided that moving to Los Angeles is fun.â He rolled his eyes, and Harry slightly chuckled because it was true. Hollywood was the place to be and people from out of state had just figured out their new profound dream to move to one of the busiest cities.Â
âFight Night will never be forgotten, alright? Weâre just ready to let this place go. Plus, the roof is leaking and the wall is tearing apart, and thatâs gonna be a pain to fix,â Henson added.Â
Mike and Henson were brothers and built Fight Night when they were in college. With the help of their father, they decided to build a place to gain strength and power, all while helping others defend themselves. Harry and Benny had been frequenting it ever since college, and it felt like home to them. Aside from the yelling and stuffy scent, it was a place for them to release any type of anger or stress.
Benny introduced Fight Night to Harry when he had physically picked Harry up from the ground on, what possibly was, the worst night of his life. It was something Harry looked forward to after classes, anxiously bouncing his leg up and down, waiting to get to the gym. Fight Night helped rebuild him, and now, he was in disbelief that the gym was closing.Â
âWeâre old as fuck now. We wanna live our lives freely. Time to retire now, donât you think?â Mike said with a sad chuckle. They were both in their late fifties, so Harry and Benny understood why they wanted to be free of work.Â
The four of them hugged it out, a very emotional and sentimental hug that was heartwarming but sad. Eyes were slightly watered before Henson pushed them and said, âWeâre closing the gym next week, not fucking dying! We have time for this bullshit for an entire week.âÂ
Harry and Benny left the gym with bittersweet hearts, but they kept Fight Night close to them, knowing that they owed a lot to the gym and the two men who built the facility. Mike had recommended some gyms that were close by if they were still interested in boxing, which they definitely were, so they were planning to check them out first before signing up.Â
âDo you wanna get something to eat?â Harry asked once they were outside of the gym. The air was humid, nothing different from inside the gym since it was summer and the sun was beginning to go down.Â
âNah, Iâm good. Gonna get home to Marianne. Iâll see you tomorrow?â Benny pat Harryâs back, nodding.Â
Harry waved. âSee you.â He watched Benny walk away before getting into his silver 1990 BMW 5 series, sighing. He always hated going home, and he always tried staying out for as long as he possibly could.Â
As he drove home, he anxiously tapped his hands on the steering wheel as he couldnât quite keep them still. Itâd been happening for a while, a lot more often than heâd like, but he couldnât help it.Â
Walking into the darkness and emptiness of his home, he sighed sadly as he sulked all the way to the restroom to shower. The hot steam relieved his achy and sore muscles, but he was hoping for this shower to also release any occurring and bad thoughts he had in his head.Â
He couldnât help but think about the gym closing down. After going there for years, he couldnât imagine going to a new gym; heâd adapted and adjusted to Fight Night that it would take him forever to find a gym that truly made him feel wanted. He was scared, to say the least.Â
Harry was never a big fan of change. He liked being comfortable and stable and didn't like to move around a lot. So, the thought of going to a different gym that wasnât Fight Night, terrified him. It only added to the list of things that had abandoned him.Â
Once he was out of the shower, white towel secured lowly on his hips, showcasing his beautiful toned torso that was filled and inked with tattoos, his pager beeped. He wondered who it was as he walked over to his nightstand, considering that it was nearing nine in the evening.Â
He deeply sighed when he saw the pager read â345987,â immediately knowing who it was. The pager code meaning âIâm hornyâ could only mean itâs coming from Lizette.Â
Deciding not to answer the page, Harry set his pager down before walking back to the restroom, only for his home phone to ring, causing him to stop in his steps and answer the phone.Â
âHello?â Harry answered.Â
âHey, baby,â Lizette said seductively. His brows furrowed, holding the towel to his waist as it had loosened up a bit.Â
âWhat do you want?âÂ
âYou know what I wantâŚâ He knew exactly what she wanted. If she hadnât paged him, he would still know what she wanted from him since all he provided to her was sex. âIsnât it such a coincidence that Iâm outside of your door right now?â Harry didnât say anything but pinch the bridge of his nose before hanging up.Â
He walked towards his front door, sighing before opening the door that revealed Lizette on the other side, wearing a low cut top, cleavage clearly showing, and high waisted denim shorts. She leaned on the doorframe, smirking as she looked Harry up and down, noticing that he wasnât wearing anything but a towel. Harry gulped as she stepped forward, placing her hands on his stomach before completely taking the towel off, and a smug smile plastered on her face.Â
Harry lets her take over like he always did. The feel of someone elseâs body holding his, and lips kissing his own and his skin was something he couldnât compare to anything else. Harry simply only did this to have some companionship, and Lizette made him feel a lot less lonely even if she was only there to have sex with him. He enjoys it twenty-five percent of the timeâthe other seventy-five percent was him actually wallowing in wanting someone to love him for him.Â
After they were done, Harry immediately covered himself with the blanket as Lizette got out of the bed to change back into her clothes. Even though they had sex multiple times and sheâs seen him naked, there was something about the vulnerability after the sex that he didnât want her to see because she didnât quite deserve that if he was being honest.Â
âI had fun. Call you next time,â Lizette bid him goodbye before smacking a big kiss to his cheek, leaving a lipstick stain on his skin. She walked herself out, and once Harry heard the slam of the front door closing, he cringed slightly, wiping the lipstick off.Â
He turned onto his side, deeply exhaling. He didnât feel anything but numbnessâit was always like this. He used sex to cope with how he felt, but it only made it worse. Honestly, he didnât know what else to do, so it was the only thing he turned to, other than boxing.Â
Harry fell asleep in his lonely room by himself. His heart was empty and felt like an isolated building that only carried his sadness.Â
The entire week had gone by in a flash â Fight Night was officially closed down for good.Â
Harry and Benny helped clean the space out as they reminisced and talked about the memories that were made in that gym. A lot of the stories had to do with girls walking by the gym, glancing through the window to see men working out, and then promptly walking into the gym to try and hit on the guys.Â
Harry had tried convincing Henson that he could run the gym, but he shot down the idea before Harry could convince him.Â
âKid, look. If you want to run your own gym, do it. I want you to own a gym under your name. Not mine or Mikeâs. You deserve to have something of your own, and whatever that may be, work for it. Work hard for it. I know you got it in you because youâre a hard worker, determined. You need to see that for yourself.âÂ
A conversation that was supposed to convince Henson to let Harry run the gym turned into a sentimental series of words that Harry really needed to hear. Harry didnât say anything else and nodded as he took in Hensonâs words to his heart. Henson was someone Harry looked up to. He was an old man with wise words, and everything he said was either meaningful or mean, in a way to show tough love. So, his words were something Harry lived by.Â
The following Monday after Fight Night closed, Benny and Harry were on the search for their new gym. They didnât plan on quitting the gym after their favorite one had closed down, and Henson and Mike made them swear they wouldnât stop working out.Â
Now, the two were walking into a gym that was up the same amount of time Fight Night was. âDonâs Boxâ was what the gym was called. The building was newly reconstructed, making the place seem more modern and a little less dingy. The space was quite big, able to fit two rings, six punching bags spread throughout, eight-speed bags, and a weight rack. The walls were painted black, but the amount of natural light from the window was plentiful enough to make the gym feel bigger and brighter.Â
A decent amount of people were at the gym, sectioned off with a few kids from eight to twelve on one side, and the rest of the adults on the other. There was a good mix between women and men, and everyone hyped everyone up with motivating words and claps over the music that was playing through two speakers that were hung in the corner.Â
âCan I help you?â An older man with gray hair had asked the two. He looked quite intimidating; wearing nylon sweatpants and a black long-sleeved shirt that was rolled up to his elbows, showing his gold watch. The look he had on his face was stern as he crossed his arms, waiting for an answer.Â
âUh, yeah. Weâre interested in joining your gym,â Benny told the man. The man looked the two up and down and scoffed.Â
âSure you guys are ready for that?âÂ
âWeâve been boxing for years, so yeah, we are.â Harry chimed in, a slightly defensive tone added to his words.Â
The man glared at Harry, stepping towards him. Harry was slightly taller than him, but he knew the man could definitely take him at any given moment, but Harry wasnât looking to fight the man, honestly. He wanted to act and look tough in front of him, so the guy wouldnât give him any crap for it later down the road during his workouts.Â
âAlright, alright. Take it easy, pa.â You interrupted, placing a hand on the manâs shoulders, making him turn his head. You raised your brows at him before tilting your head a bit, telling him to step back. The man backed off, giving Harry a snarly glance before huffing.Â
âIâm just messing. Gotta know how tough my athletes are to be here,â he spoke in a lighter tone than he was to the man in front of him, putting his arm around you.Â
âThought you were gonna âstay on the sidelinesâ and let me handle it?â You quoted your fatherâs words back to him, and he chuckled, putting his hands up, surrendering as he knew he couldnât win against you.Â
âAlright, alright. Iâll let you handle it.â Don, your father, quickly looked at Harry up and down, and you rolled your eyes, knowing he wouldnât do anything to potential customers. He walked away and you breathed out a chuckle, scratching your head.Â
âSorry about that. You two are interested in joining?â You asked the two men in front of you. They were ratherâŚattractive, you noticed. The one on the left was gorgeous with beautiful brown skin that looked so smooth. He was wearing a pair of red short-shorts and a white muscle tee. You noticed that he was wearing a wedding ring, so you averted your eyes off of him. The man next to him, however, was absolutely stunning. His left arm carried a sleeve-full of tattoos, and you wanted so badly to examine and look at every single one. With chocolate brown curls, his green eyes had a tad bit of a glimmer to them, not too much though, because if you were being honest, they were a bit dull, like he was exhausted and needed to let off some of the stress that he held based on how tense he looked.Â
You tried not to observe and think about it too much as your ability to read individuals thrived while meeting new people. You shook it off the thought, not wanting to assume things about their lives and seem too creepy in front of new and potential members.Â
âYeah, we are. Iâm Benny, by the way.â He shook your hand, smiling.Â
âNice to meet you. Iâm Y/N. I run this place.â You offered the same smile back. Your eyes looked over at his friend, and he gave you a soft smile. âY/N,â you repeated, taking your hand out for him to shake.Â
âIâm Harry. Harry Styles,â he introduced fully. A beautiful name for a beautiful man, you thought. He shook your hand as you felt the softness of his skin mixed with a tad bit of roughness from the callouses, probably from heavy-lifting.Â
Something about Harry introducing his full name had made you a bit weak in the knees. His deep and accented voice had made you a bit flustered as chills ran up your body. Youâre acting like a fool, your subconscious told you. You were never one to show your obvious attraction for men, you were more into watching them from the side. But once Harry walked in, it seemed like you didnât know how to keep your chill.Â
âPerfect. Nice to meet you both. Signing up shouldnât be too longâdonât want to keep you two from working out.â You led the two men to one of the offices, knocking on the wooden door to greet Jamie. âHi. These two are looking to sign up. Do you mind helping them out?âÂ
âOf course! Come on in, guys,â Jamie greeted them, offering them to take a seat along with some water, which they both said yes to.Â
âI have to get back to my session, but you both are in great hands. Jamie is one of our best,â you told the two. You sent an innocent wink at Jamie, which he sent one back while Harry watched the entire interaction, feeling uneasy.Â
It was quite obvious how attractive and pretty you were. The moment he first saw you, his breath had immediately hitched in his throat. You had the most gorgeous face heâd ever seen, and when you spoke, your voice was soft and gentle, making Harry a bit more safe in a place heâs new to.Â
Jamie had gotten their details and credit card information down before asking them if they needed a tour of the place. They both had said no, seeing as things were pretty self-explanatory and theyâd been to a boxing gym before.Â
They headed out of Jamieâs office and to the main floor, walking over to the heavy bags since the section was less crowded to start stretching. Harry rolled his shoulders and neck around, swinging his arms forwards and backward as he looked around the gym.Â
This was something he had to get used toâbeing in a new place, surrounded by new people. At Fight Night, he was around the same people for four years, and he was comfortable â he was fine with it. But now, he had to go through the same process all over again. Nerves and anxiety crept up his skin as he tried to jump around lightly, warming up a bit but also trying to shake off the unwanted feelings.Â
âHey, you okay?â Benny asked concerningly as he stretched.Â
Harryâs brows raised, covering up his anxiousness. âHmm, yeah, I am. Yâknow, just a, uh, new place, thatâs all,â he brushed him off.Â
âOkay. Well, whenever youâre ready to go, just tell me,â Benny told him before going into his bag to grab the wrapping tape.Â
Harry nodded, smiling in appreciation. Benny had always been a great friend to him, and Harry was a great friend to Benny as well. They always took each otherâs feelings and concerns into considerationâalways making sure the other is okay. They both really appreciated it because some friends werenât lucky enough to talk about their feelings and be that vulnerable with one another. They trusted each other; they were like brothers.Â
Harry grabbed his jump rope, deciding to do a little five-minute warm-up to get his heart rate going. He faced the boxing ring to the left of him, noticing that you were in the ring, so he decided to casually watch you box. He then noticed that you had boxing pads on instead of gloves, and the people you were training were the kids that he had seen earlier.Â
He watched you instruct the excited kids who were prancing around with their boxing gloves on, in every color imagined. You helped them fix their form, their stance, and their punch; telling them that they had to be quick with their hit to bring their glove back to the side of their face quickly, so their opponent doesnât have a chance to take a hit. The kids demonstrated for you, punching your right hand that was covered with the pad. You praised all of them, of course, correcting a few things, but overall, everyone was a natural fighter.Â
Harryâs heart rate definitely started to pick up, and he didnât know if it was how fast he was jumping rope or because of the flutter he felt as he watched you interact with the kids. He truly never felt this kind of feeling where his heart picked up from the simple act of looking at someone.Â
You had definitely noticed Harry staring at you from your peripheral view, and you had thought it was a simple glance, but he never looked away. So, you took the opportunity to take a quick look at him while the kids were practicing.Â
Your eyes met him and you sent him a small smile, along with a wave with your boxing pads. Harryâs eyes widened, realizing that you were waving at him, and what happened next had embarrassed him even more. With how fast he was jumping, he suddenly got tangled with the rope, causing him to trip against it. Luckily, he caught his fall, but he was already embarrassed enough.Â
Harryâs heart completely dropped, cheeks flushed. He couldnât believe he had made a complete fool of himself, especially at his new gym. He so badly wanted to tell Benny that he was ready to leave, but when he looked over at his friend, he had already started his workout, being so focused and in the zone that Harry didnât want to be a burden.Â
When he turned back around to see if you were still looking, he jolted back a bit as you were behind him.Â
âAre you okay?â You asked concerningly.Â
âUh, yeah. IâŚyeah, Iâm okay. Thanks.â He cleared his throat, trying to cover up the fact that his voice almost cracked. He was so stunned by you. The way you made sure he was okay was possibly the nicest thing someone had done for him as you looked at him with your sweet eyes, and your posture was giving him your full attention. His heart pounded through his chest; the simple action and effort that was being put into this was making him overwhelmed.Â
âOkay. Let me know if you need anything, yeah?â You told him as you looked at him intently. He simply nodded, knowing that he couldnât process any more words.Â
You gave him one last smile before quickly going back to your students. He watched you climb into the ring so effortlessly before continuing your training class.Â
Harry took a deep breath before walking over to one of the speed bags that was in the corner, hoping to hide away from the embarrassment that he felt. Wrapping his hands up, he anxiously scanned the room, noticing that everyone was doing their own thing. There was a possibility that no one else had seen him almost fall on his face, except you, which he really wished that it was the entire gym who saw him instead, not you. He lazily hit the speed bag, trying to warm up and shake off his mortification. Harry continued hitting the bag, eventually getting into a rhythm as his fists alternated between one another, along with the rhythm of the music of Montrell Jordanâs âThis Is How We Do It.âÂ
Soon enough, all the worry and stress that was in Harryâs head and body was shaken off and completely forgotten about as he focused on his strong punches, making sure to connect his mind to his muscles, so he could feel his muscles working.Â
And for the time being, life wasnât all that bad.Â
A month had passed since being at Donâs Box, and Harry and Benny quite liked it. They had newer equipment and their music was always on point, playing the best of 90s R&B and Hip-Hop. It was their favorite music to listen to, especially while working out. The people there were nice and cool, never getting in each otherâs way and letting everyone do their own thing while still having fun, keeping the space safe and comfortable.Â
Harry found himself walking into the gym at nine at night, an hour and a half before it closed. Usually, he wouldnât work out this late, but during the day, he had felt so unmotivated and lazy to even get out of bed. He could put the blame on Lizette because she had gone to his house the night prior, doing the same thing they always do, but he knew she wasnât the one to blame. Something about saying no to her and having her not talk to him had physically pained him. They were in a specific arrangement, he knew that. But having someone leave him again was something he couldnât go through.Â
âWhatâs Luv?â by Fat Joe, Ja Rule, and Ashanti was playing when he set his bag down onto the ground against the wall, next to the heavy bag. He started to stretch as he took a look around; not many people were working out at this time, which he liked.Â
His eyes continued to search the gym, in hopes he would find you still here. Before the slightest bit of disappointment could settle, he saw you walk out of the hallway with Jamie, smiling and laughing at something he had said. He made a face as a hint of jealousy rushed through as he saw you with Jamie. He knew that there was no point in being jealous because he barely even knew you. But for the past month that heâs been at Donâs Box, you always had this look of excitement on your face when you saw and greeted Harry. It made his stomach flutter every time you would flash him your beautiful smile as you would carry the conversation, asking him about his day and if the music was good, which he commends you for putting his favorite songs on.Â
Looking away, he decided to just focus on the quick workout he could get in before the gym closed, so he retained his attention back to stretching before bending down to grab the tape from his bag to wrap his hands.Â
âUh, hi, Harry,â you smiled as you greeted him. He looked up at you. The way the light was positioned behind your head made you look like an actual angel; you were ethereal.Â
He stood up and smiled softly. âHi. How are you?â He asked, trying to contain his nerves from just looking at you. You were gorgeous, as you always are every day. You were wearing a pair of black leggings and a light pink t-shirt that was tied into a knot with the word âangelâ that was surrounded by wings printed in the middle. Kind of a coincidence, he thought, thinking back to when he called you an angel in his head.Â
âGood, good. Youâre here later than usualâwithout Benny too,â you pointed out, but immediately cursed at yourself for making such an odd observation and telling it to his face as if you were keeping track of the times heâs gone into the gym.Â
âYeah, I was prettyâŚtired during the day, so the only time I got a burst of energy was right now. And Benny is with his wife and in-laws tonight, so itâs just me tonight,â he explained with a soft chuckle.Â
âWell, glad you got the chance to make it in,â you said genuinely. He simply nodded, not knowing what else to say but instead he captured himself into you as you stared at him with your captivating eyes that spoke right through him. What was happening to him? He thought. This hadnât really happened before, and he was good at letting his walls go up and guarding his precious heart.Â
âHey, Iâm gonna head out,â Jamie said, greeting you goodbye, and taking Harry out of his thoughts. âHey, man. Have a good workout.â He shook Harryâs hand, and Harry smiled, nodding.Â
âSee you tomorrow,â you told Jamie, smiling a bit as you waved. Jamie left the gym, and it was just you and Harry, along with a few other people who were wrapping up their workout.Â
âAre you not gonna go with him?â Harry asked, and you raised your brows in confusion.Â
âWhy would I go with him?â You wondered.Â
âOh, I just thought you would leave with him, yâknow, your boyfriendâŚâ he trailed off, slyly slipping in the word boyfriend in that sentence.Â
You giggled, shaking your head. âNo, no. Jamie isn't my boyfriend. Iâve known him since I was ten, but nothingâs ever happened between us. Besides, he has a boyfriend of his own.â Harry raised his brows in shock as his shoulders visibly relaxed. âNo need to worry, Harry. Iâm all yours,â you flirted a bit. You normally wouldnât flirt so easily with someone, especially if they were a member of your gym, but something about Harry had made you release all the stress you had once you saw and talked to him.Â
Harry blushed, grinning as his dimple popped out on his cheek. Your eyes lightened once you noticed that feature, making you think that he was ten times cuter than he already is.Â
âYouâve been in the ring, right?â You asked curiously. Harry nodded, and the corner of your lips turned up. âGreat! We have about a little less than an hour and a half, so if youâre looking for some intense cardio, I could do it with youâyâknow, train you and guide you, and whatnot,â you suggested.Â
If Harryâs being honest, he wasnât planning on doing cardio todayâjust a few routines to get his muscles warm, but the way youâre looking at him and how you spoke to him so softly and effortlessly, he couldnât say no.Â
âYeah, Iâm up for it,â he responded. Your eye brightened, resisting the urge to squeal from excitement, telling him that you were going to get the mitts and to meet you in the ring. He chuckled slightly as you walked over to the equipment room to get the mitts. Harry quickly hit the speed bag to warm up until he saw you walk out of the room.Â
He put on his gray sweater and a green packers beanie, so he could sweat more before he met you in the ring with his gloves pressed between his arm and the side of his body. You put the mitts in between your legs as Harry handed you one of the gloves. Holding onto the end of it, he put his hand inside as you pushed the glove towards him, so it would sit on his hand tightly before strapping it securely for him before proceeding to the next one. The proximity between you two was quite close as you helped him put on the gloves, and you could smell the faint scent of cologne mixed with the slightest bit of sweat, giving him that unique musk; the one that doesnât smell horrible at all but lured you in.Â
You quickly snapped out of your thoughts and looked up at Harry. âGood?â He nodded, punching the gloves together to make sure they felt comfortable. âReady?âÂ
âLetâs do this,â Harry said, skipping in place to warm his body up before getting into his stance. His left leg was a few feet away from his right leg as he bounced around a bit, waiting for you.Â
You faintly smirked, nodding your head before you put on the mitts. Since Harry was very familiar with the mitt workouts, you figured that you didnât need to explain what each number represented since mostly all trainers and coaches use the same numbers for the same punch.Â
âOkay, letâs warm up a bit. Give me one,â you instructed. Harry put his gloves up to protect his face as you held your right mitt up. With his left hand, he punched your mitt, not giving his full strength. âIs that all you got?â You challenged, knowing that he had more power in him.Â
âI-I donât want to hurt you,â he said honestly with a small pout, standing straight from his boxing stance. Usually, you would take offense to that statement, barking back a comment saying that just because you were a girl it didnât mean you couldnât take a hit, but you didnât go that far into it, knowing Harry didnât mean it that way whatsoever.Â
âYouâre not gonna hurt me, Harry. Iâve trained so many peopleâall with different body types and strengths. My hand has felt all different types of power, so hit the mitt like you mean it.â You hit his shoulder, building up his motivation. He nodded, getting back into his stance as did you. âNow, give me one.âÂ
This time, Harryâs glove met your mitt with full potential and force, and you took the hit wellânot moving back or being stunned.Â
âThere you go! Keep going,â you told him, and he continued giving you jabs. âIn Da Clubâ by 50 Cent was blaring through the speakers as Harry breathed in through his nose and out through his mouth. Several huffs of breath came out loudly as he punched, moving and dancing around the ring with you as the two of you occasionally shifted and switched positions.Â
Harry got in a few more punches before you switched it up, telling him, â1-2.â Harry jabbed with his left hand and crossed jabbed with his right hand, putting his full range of motion into his right punch. He did that combination five times as he started to feel sweat dripping down his back and the sides of his forehead.Â
You were yelling out words of encouragement and motivation, praising him for his punches, to which he responded back with a better and solid punch to your mitts.Â
âNice!â You took a step back to move around the ring to take advantage of the space as Harry jumped and skipped around to wherever you directed him to. âWanna take a break?â You asked. He shook his head no, determined to finish this workout that he couldnât even think about wanting to take a break because he really didnât want to. âOkay, 1-4-3,â you told him. With force, he jabbed, hooked with his left hand, and hooked with his right hand.Â
This feeling that he had feltâbeing in the ring with youâwas something entirely different than when he was in the ring with Henson or Mike. The stress that he physically carried onto his shoulder had washed away into nothingness, leaving him with a drive that didnât include overthinking and fear. The fear that had left him worried and depressed, that his life would amount to nothingâthat fear disappeared inside him once he threw the first punch. It was exhilarating and fun, and he didnât know he could have this much fun in the ring. But this was the most pleasure heâs ever felt while boxing.Â
You ordered him to do some different combinations, such as â1-2-3-5,â which was a jab, cross jab, leading hook, and rear uppercut. You also included moments when he had to duck because you were swinging at him. He definitely had gotten into a rhythm, punching and moving faster. You were the trainer, the person that was supposed to instruct him, but you matched his rhythm and energy and moved quicker with him as well.Â
You were starting to get a sweat in as well, and that was mostly because of the adrenaline rushing through your blood as you moved excitedly around the ring.Â
After a while, a timer had gone off, telling you that it was time to close up as Harryâs focus was cut offâthe sound making him look up hastily. Throughout the time you were working out with Harry, people were slowly starting to make their way out, but the two of you were too focused on working out that you hadnât even noticed that it was just the two of you left in the gym.Â
âOh, guess weâre closing.â You stood up straighter, wiping the sweat on your forehead with your forearm. âFeelinâ good?â You asked Harry with a proud smile.Â
âFeelinâ great,â he smirked.Â
âGood, Iâm glad. You did great!â You complimented, ripping the velcro strap with your teeth as you took off the mitts. Harry did the same, shaking out his arms as he clenched and unclenched his fists to relieve the ache from making a fist for more than an hour.Â
âThank you. Youâre a really great trainer, by the way. This wasâŚthe first time I had fun in the ring,â he told you honestly, and without knowing, the slightest bit of him had opened up to you.Â
Your eyes brightened, a glimpse of shimmer reflected on your eyes. âReally? Thank you, that makes me really happy, actually.â You felt like you were going to cry on the spot. No one, except your younger students, had ever told you that they had fun in the ring since most people used boxing as a way to get stronger and improve their punches. But fun? That was the first, and you would definitely keep that with you forever.Â
You and Harry walked to one end of the ring as Harry held open the top two ropes with his hand as he stepped on the bottom two ropes with his foot, holding it open for you to get out. You blushed, thanking him before you got out of the ring as he followed you out.Â
Once you two were on the ground, you turned around to face him. You watched as he took off his beanie, shaking his hair out as they bounced; curls were now formed into waves because of the heat and the sweat that had produced in his beanie. He lookedâŚextra good right now. With his cheeks flushed, hair messy, and sweat dripping down his forehead, you couldnât put into words how incredibly sexy he looked.Â
You cleared your throat, not wanting to get caught for ogling him. âI, uh, have to check on some things before closing. Take your time! And Iâll see you on Monday?â You raised your brows and curled your lips in as you looked up at him. A sense of flustered-ness settled in you as you waited for his answer.Â
He breathed out a chuckle as he looked down briefly before looking back into your eyes again. âYeah, Iâll see you.â You nodded your head, waving at him before you headed over to the office. Harry smiled as he watched you walk into the hallway until he couldnât see you anymore.Â
A small blush formed onto his cheeks as he contained himself from smiling too big and too wide. He put all of his stuff back into his bag, grabbing his towel, ridding the sweat off his skin. Grabbing his belongings, he took another glance at the hallway, hoping to get another look at you before he took off, but you were occupied with closing the gym, so he didnât bother staying any longer.Â
With a small smile on his face, he walked out of the gym, taking in this new profound feeling that heâd never felt before, hoping this feeling would last.Â
The next morning, Harry had a sudden urge to go back to the gym. His upper body was quite sore, but he figured he could do some leg exercises to balance the soreness he felt. He normally wouldnât workout on the weekends since those were his rest days, but despite being sore, he didnât feel tired. It could also do with the fact that he wanted to see you again, not wanting to wait until Monday to do that again.Â
When he walked into the gym, âRide Wit Meâ by Nelly was playing and his head slightly bopped to the music, walking over to the corner of the gym to warm up. He scanned the gym, looking for a particular person, but couldnât find you. There were a decent amount of people, not too crowded or too little, so it shouldâve been easy to find you. Thinking that you were probably in your office, he shook off the slight disappointment and got ready to workout.Â
Throughout his workout, his head wasnât in it. He kept glancing through the mirror to see if you had shown up, but you hadnât. His eyes were always looking over at the front door every time someone would walk in, but a small frown settled onto his face when he realized it wasnât you.Â
He wrapped up his workout an hour later, thinking that he somewhat still got a good workout in. He walked out of the gym, saying bye to some of the guys that had caught him before he left.Â
It was nearing noon when his stomach had growled, urging him to consume some food. There was a Mediterranean hole-in-the-wall restaurant right across Donâs Box, and his mouth watered at the thought of it. He walked to his car that was parked on the side of the street to drop his bag off before walking across the street to the restaurant.Â
He scanned the menu, standing on the side since he didnât know what he was ordering yet. The sound of the door ringing and a voice that was speaking to him brought him out of his thoughts.Â
âAre you in line?â Harry turned his head towards the voice, and his heart nearly beating ten times faster when he saw you. He had a shocked expression on his face, not expecting to see you, especially when you were wearing the complete opposite of what he normally sees you in. You were wearing a pair of blue denim overalls with a black t-shirt underneath, along with white Reebok sneakers. You had a bit of makeup on; an orange sparkly eyeshadow look with some mascara that made your eyelashes look full and natural. Your lips were painted in a red-orange lipstick stain, bringing out more of your natural lip color.Â
The beauty that Harryâs eyes were blessed with made his knees weak, sending shivers to his skin. Your angelic appearance had struck him so hard that he was sure he would see the light of day, hoping to meet you up there since you were a real-life angel.Â
âY/NâŚhi,â he managed to spit out.Â
âHi, Harry. Did you just workout?â You asked.Â
He nodded, feeling a bit nervous. âUh, yeah, I did.âÂ
âYou donât usually go in on SaturdaysâŚâ you noticed, only seeing him during the weekdays. Youâre off on Saturdays, but there was one Saturday that you had gone into the gym briefly, and you didnât see him there.Â
âYeah, I felt like going in today,â he said, obviously leaving out the part that he only went to the gym to see you again, but you didnât need to know that bit. There was a moment of silence between you two until Harry remembered that he was probably holding up the line for you. âOh, you could go ahead. Iâm not ready to order yet.âÂ
You smiled, nodding your head as you stepped forward in the line. âHave you ever been here before?âÂ
âNo, I havenât. Do you have any suggestions?âÂ
You slightly squinted your eyes at him. âDo you trust me?â You asked.Â
That was a difficult question for him, and somewhat vague. Did you mean overall, at the moment, or for his food order? Either way, he nodded because he knew that it didnât matter what you meant--he had this sense of security with you that he would trust you with his life, and that said a lot, considering that heâd only known you for a month.Â
âYeah, I do trust you,â he stated honestly.Â
His words brought a grin to your face, looking at him appreciatively. Based on your observations of him, you noticed that he was a bit closed off; he didnât open himself up, and if he did, it took a lot in him to do just that. So, hearing him tell you that he trusts you made you grateful, and you would never do anything to take advantage of that trust because he didnât just give it out easily.Â
âI got you,â you simply said before turning back around towards the cashier. Harry softly smirked as he took a step forward to stand next to you. You looked at him, flashing him a toothy grin before quickly facing forward.Â
You ordered your favorite dish from the restaurant, which was a beef kabab plate, for the both of you. Harry quickly got his wallet out, offering to pay, but you told him that you got it this time, hoping your words conveyed that you wanted there to be a next time. He shyly thanked you for the lunch, keeping your words in mind because he would definitely be up for a ânext time.âÂ
Luckily, you didnât have to wait long for your order to come out, which was fortunate for Harry because he was starving. You suggested eating outside since it was a beautiful day out and Harry agreed, following you out of the restaurant.Â
You two sat on the metal chairs, digging into your dishes. Harryâs mouth watered as he ate, his stomach being satisfied. There was a comfortable silence that settled between you two, only making small conversation when you asked if he liked the food, which you were glad to hear that he loved.Â
âSo, how long have you been running Donâs Box?â He suddenly asked, wanting to get to know you better.Â
You raised your brows at his question. âFor about two years now. My father, Don, opened the gym when he was twenty-five, thatâs when he had me as well. But when he opened the gym, it practically changed his life. Heâd boxed all of his life, and he was happy training other people when he started getting more people to come into his gym. When I was about six, he told me that he wanted me to run the gym when I turned twenty-five, only if I wanted to. But of course, I did. I looked up to him all of my life, and the gym made me happy as well,â you explained, smiling at the memory of when you were younger, being excited to turn twenty-five to do the same thing your father did.Â
A soft smile appeared on Harryâs face as you reminisce on the memory.Â
âHow long have you been boxing?âÂ
âSince I was eight. Don showed me the ropes when I told him I was ready. There used to be a seating area on the side of the ring because when I was younger, I used to sit there and watch him work and train people. So, I was pretty interested and intrigued about fighting to get myself stronger, even at the young age of eight,â you chuckled.Â
You were a daddyâs girl, always had been since you were born. Don had always set a pretty amazing example of how you should go about living your life. He would always say âLive your life with a strong punch. Keep your head up, and donât let anything get to you because youâre so much more than what other people say. But if you need to cry, you canâthereâs absolutely nothing wrong with that.âÂ
As your eyes watered from the thought of your fatherâs words, Harry watched as you got emotional and he couldnât help but think that youâve crossed a line in asking too many questions.Â
âSorry, I always get emotional-â
âIâm sorry if Iâve oversteppedâI shouldâve kept the questions to myself-â
âOh, no! You didnât overstep whatsoever. Iâm glad you asked me those questions, I just get soft and emotional over my dad, so hence, Iâm tearing up,â you let out a somewhat pathetic chuckle as you couldnât believe that you almost cried in front of this gorgeous man. You dabbed the corners of your eyes with your napkin, stopping the tears from falling out.Â
Harry nodded understandingly, waiting for you to regroup yourself. You kept apologizing, but he kept telling you that you had nothing to be sorry for.Â
âReally, if you need to cry, you canâŚâ he told you. Your eyes widened; you were just thinking about your dadâs words two minutes ago, and for Harry to say the exact same thing Don had always told you without even knowing that Don had said those words.Â
Not wanting to cry in front of him, you simply nodded your head, holding the napkin on the outer corner of your eye, so the napkin would catch your tears.Â
Harry quickly changed the subject, sensing that you needed it, and you really did, so you were grateful for that. He busied himself by telling you what his favorite ice cream flavor was since he was suddenly reminded that there was a shop just down the street. He kept you occupied by talking about all the sweet treats that he used to eat with his mom back home, and how much he missed walking down the streets in the city to eat some ice cream.Â
âMy mum used to make this really great chocolate mousse pie, and we would eat it every weekend. It was extremely sweet, but it was delicious. I really miss itâŚâ he told you. That had been a while ago, but it was like he could still taste the dessert as if he just ate it yesterday.Â
âIs your mom back home in England?â You asked, figuring that there wasnât any harm in asking to get to know him since he asked you some questions as well.Â
âUhâŚactually, I donât know where she isâŚâ he said honestly, and you knitted your brows in confusion. âI mean, honestly. I donât know where she is. Ever since I went to uni, sheâs been all over the place, taking vacations and barely calling. I-I feel like sheâs forgotten about me,â he spoke ever so softly as he was fragile.Â
You listened to him intently, giving him your full attention as he was opening up a part of his life that you knew he doesnât tell a lot of people. A part of him that heâs kept in for so long and just the passing sense of relief he felt saying those words and speaking up about this subject had made him feel so much better.Â
âIâm sure she didnât forget about you.âÂ
âSeemed like it. We inherited my grandfatherâs willâleft us a generous amount for each of us thatâll take care of us for the rest of our lives. And she took that and ran with it. I mean, I get itâshe wants to live her life, and nowâs the time to do that because sheâs got the money for it, but I feelâŚabandoned. She got up, said goodbye, and justâŚleft. It just makes me think that Iâm not good enoughâthat I wasnât good enough to stay.â Harry opened a can of worms that he canât take back anymore. But the trust that he had in you already made him want to talk about everything with you; to open up about all of his stresses and insecurities.Â
Boldly, you reached your arm across the table but immediately pulled away because you didnât want to touch him without asking. But before you could open your mouth and ask, Harry had reached forward, meeting your hand halfway as his palm was facing up as if it was a way of saying âyou can hold my hand if you want.â Blushing, you reached forward again and took your hand into his.Â
The touch was sweet and tender as you two held hands; the want to hold each other tighter was present, wanting to take away Harryâs pain.Â
âHarry, you will always be good enough. I know we just met a month ago, but I already know that youâre the sweetest, kindest person. Please know that. You are enough, and Iâm grateful that youâre here and that Iâm sitting across from you, eating lunch,â you declared. Harry sniffled, not knowing what to say as he put his head down, so you continued. âFor as long as weâre friends, Iâm gonna stay.â You spoke with complete honesty as you caressed the back of his hand with your thumb.Â
Harryâs head lifted up at your last statement in disbelief as if this was the first time someone had ever said that to him.Â
âReally?âÂ
You squeezed his hand, making his heart flutter. âYeah. As long as you want me to,â you reassured, nodding.Â
Harry gave you a soft and appreciating smile as he took a deep breath. The breath that he held in throughout the entirety of the conversation was finally let out in relief. He shrunk back into his seat, still holding your hand as you continued rubbing it, and he breathed out a chuckle. It was an overwhelming feeling that was riddled with happiness and a sense of security washed over him.Â
It was like he had been waiting for you; someone new that unexpectedly came into his life was scary because it was change, but it was a good change. A change for the better. He had been vulnerable enough to open himself up, and it all led to the tight bond and trust you two had with one another, sealing your friendship and relationship.Â
And you both knew this moment was going to change everything.Â
Time had passed by rather quickly as it was nearing the end of October. The weather was getting chillier as the sun was beginning to disappear behind the clouds earlier. There was something about the fall weather that Harry adored. It may have to do with the fact that the gloomy sky had occurred more often, or how he got to call it a night early. Whatever it may be, he liked it, or he used to.Â
In recent times, he wanted the sun to stay out until it was time to go to bed. He wanted warm days instead of gloomy. His new changed attitude towards life had to do with you.Â
You and Harry had been hanging out quite a lot; getting to know one another, getting a bite or drink, and working out together, it definitely gave Harry the chance to let go of his past. He was happier, smiled more, and laughed a lot which he didnât know he was capable of doing those things again until he met you.Â
Benny loved it, though. He sure cherished it because seeing his best friend happy again was something he was afraid he wouldnât see again. But that didnât stop him from having a little talk with you, trying to protect Harry and set you straight.Â
When Harry was occupied with hitting the speed bag, Benny walked over to the ring, where you had just finished another class with your younger students.Â
âHey, Benny!â You greeted him once you saw him walk towards you.Â
âHey, do you mind chatting for a minute?â You raised your brows, nodding your head. Benny usually didnât talk to you privately nor was it anything serious, but by the look on his face, it seemed pretty serious. âSo, youâve been hanging out with Harry a lot, hmm?âÂ
You smiled softly. âYeah! Hope you donât mind that? Know Iâm taking your best friend and allâŚâÂ
âNo, I donât mind. Iâm actually glad you are. He seems quite taken by you, and I havenât seen him like that in a very long time,â Benny said honestly. You seemed to know where this conversation was going now, and now that you thought about it, you expected this from Benny because they were like brothers and Benny would do anything to protect Harry. âWhat Iâm trying to say isâŚif youâre only hanging out with him to fuck with him, donât bother. Heâs been through enough, and I know he canât handle anymore of that and I canât stand to see him like that again.âÂ
âLike what?â You hesitatingly asked.Â
âLikeâŚjust know that he was a mess. He couldnât get up, eat, drink, shower, or anything. I had to physically help him. I donât want to see him like that ever again.â Benny shook his head as if he was reliving the horrible nightmare that he went through a few years ago.Â
âIs this about his mom?âÂ
âHe told you that?â He asked, just to make sure, and you nodded. âKind of. But thatâs only half of it. Heâll tell you when heâs ready, but Iâve already said too much. JustâŚtake care of him, okay? He tries to act tough sometimes, but heâs trying his best to not break down. Although, I havenât seen that kind of look on him since heâs been hanging out with you, so youâre probably doing something right.âÂ
You nodded understandingly. âThanks for talking to me. I donât plan on breaking his heart at all, and Iâm quite taken with him myself,â you admitted.Â
âGood. Iâm glad you are. Heâs a great guy.â Benny smiled, and you agreed.Â
Benny didnât talk to you for much longer before he started getting cold from standing around, so he ended the conversation and went back to working out.Â
Meanwhile, as you and Benny were talking, Don took the chance himself to talk to Harry, seeing as you were occupied.Â
âHarry.â Don made himself present around him.Â
Harry immediately stopped his workout, greeting your father. âWhatâs up, Don?âÂ
âSo, Iâve noticed that youâve been hanging around Y/N a lot.â Donâs stance changed as he crossed his arms, sporting a slight frown. Harry gulped; he always found Don to be quite intimidating, ever since he joined the gym, but Harry didnât want to seem like he couldnât have a serious conversation with the father of the woman that heâs slowly falling for--no, he couldnât act like that. âWhatâs that all about?â Don added.Â
âIâm justâŚweâre friends, so weâre just hanging out. Nothing more,â he told Don honestly. Although he would like there to be more, he didnât know how you felt about him or if you even felt anything for him at all.Â
Don nodded. He could tell that Harry was holding back on something he wanted to say, and he had an idea of what that was. So, he let loose of the intimidating and protective act, knowing that wasnât really him anyway, and his expression softened as he uncrossed his arms. He placed a comforting hand on Harryâs shoulder, taking a deep breath.Â
âYou have this look of wanting to say more and you donât have to tell me, but I will tell you thisâŚif you want to date her and go out with her, you can. This isnât approval and a âyesâ for you to take her out because I donât need to do that--she can make her own decisions. All Iâm saying is that if you want to, go for it. Life is too fuckinâ short to not do anything, to not say anything.âÂ
Harryâs shoulders relaxed and he smiled in appreciation at Donâs words. âThanks, Don. I definitely want to take her out, but I just donât know how she feels about me.âÂ
âOh, Iâm pretty sure she feels something for you--she hasnât told me, but I just know. Youâre the first guy in a while that sheâs been hanging around with consistently, and that comforts me, in a way. Knowing that sheâs living her life and not holding back anymore.â Harry stayed silent, taking his words in. He tried not to overanalyze what Don had said because youâll tell him and open up to him when you want to, just like how youâre patiently waiting for Harry to open up fully as well. âJustâŚdonât break her heart, okay? Sheâs been through enough and I just want her to be happy.âÂ
Harry nodded understandingly, saying a soft âokayâ before Don changed the subject and talked about how Harry should train with him one of these days, which Harry immediately said yes to and they planned for the following week to train. Don left him to finish his workout, telling him to have a nice night as you and Harry were going out to dinner.Â
Benny and Harry finished up their workout, and before they were able to head out the front door, Harry stopped, telling Benny to give him a minute. Harry fast-walked towards you, lugging his bag on his shoulder. You were coming out of your office, which was why Harry couldnât say goodbye to you after his workout.Â
âHey, weâre heading out,â he said, wiping the bit of sweat on the back of his neck with his towel.Â
âOh, okay. Iâll see you later?âÂ
âYeah, Iâll pick you up,â Harry suggested, pursing his lips into his mouth as he contained his smile. You nodded, eyes sparkling as you looked up at him. âIâll, uh, page you,â he slightly smirked.Â
âOkay,â you mindlessly responded as you were getting quite lost in his green eyes that looked at you intently with a gleam that sat so perfectly against his irises, making his eyes glimmer brightly.
He gave you one last smile and a little wave before walking out of the gym with Benny. You were left stunned as you stood there, completely drifted away from reality as you were in a dream about Harry. You felt a small nudge on your shoulder, causing you to snap out of your thoughts and dream as you turned around to see your father laughing.Â
âGet back to work.â A smug plastered on his face.Â
A breathy chuckle was released from your mouth as a hint of embarrassment emerged onto your face with wide eyes. You got back to work, focusing your attention on training your next client, but your mind was racing at the thought of Harry.Â
As he promised, Harry paged you when he was outside of your apartment complex. He wanted to knock on your door like the proper gentleman that he is, but the buzzer machine to let people in wasnât working, so paging you would have to do for now. He waited for you outside of his newly washed car, making sure it was nice and clean for you as he leaned against the passenger door.Â
You walked out of your building, and Harry was immediately blown away. You were wearing a black skirt with stockings that hugged your legs, and a white knitted sweater since it was on the chillier side.Â
Every time he saw you, his heart would beat incredibly fast, pulse pounding through his veins. His stomach was in flits of butterflies, soaring in his heart and stomach, making him extremely nervous. Every time he saw you, everything would stop, like you were the only person in the world and everything was okay.Â
âHey, H,â you flashed him your smile, one that he looked forward to every time he saw you.Â
âH-Hi,â he stuttered, clearing his throat to start over. âHi. You look really nice.âÂ
You blushed. âThank you! You look great as well. Love this top.â You reached forward, lightly tugging at his red-orange knitted long-sleeve. He paired it with blue jeans that flared at the bottom with white sneakers. His fingers were covered in beautiful silver rings, making his hands look quite gorgeous.Â
âThank you, shall we?âÂ
âYeah, oh, I got you something.â You reached into your bag to take out the cased CD, and before Harry was about to protest, you handed it to him. âI made you this mixtape. Just some songs that I think youâll likeâIâm sure you know all of them, but they just made me think of you,â you said shyly.Â
You werenât normally shy and you would call yourself a pretty strong and confident person, but you had been so nervous to give this to himâeven making the tape left you anxious and shaking.Â
âWow, this isâŚvery thoughtful of you. Thank you so much.â Harry looked at the CD with the songs written in your handwriting. There were 10 songs, and Harry knew all of them. They were allâŚromantic songs.Â
âThatâs not weird, right? Yâknow, making you a mixtape?â You asked unsurely. The odd feeling had popped into your mind at the last second as you watched Harry observe the CD, not giving a bad nor good reaction to your gift.Â
âNo, not at all! I really appreciate this. No one has ever made a mixtape for me before, so this is really nice and special. Thank you again.â He reached forward, wrapping one arm around your shoulders as both of your arms found their way around his waist. You somewhat werenât convinced that he liked it, and he could tell just by how you were looking at him--looking for some more reassurance--that it seemed like he didnât like it. When he pulled away, he looked at you before saying, âReally, it makes me happy that you took the time to make this for me. Itâs so sweet and thoughtful of you, and I already love all the songs on here, so Iâm one-hundred-percent going to enjoy this.âÂ
You nodded, smiling softly as he opened the door for you and you thanked him, blushing as you got in. It seemed very much like a date and you couldnât help but smile at the thought of that.Â
Harry drove to the sandwich shop that waited for you both. It was twenty minutes away on the other side of the town, but Harry had been raving about it so much to you that you told him that you two should go, which Harry was more than happy to take you.Â
The sound of Boyz II Men filled the speakers of Harryâs car as the two of you sang your hearts out to âOn Bended Knees,â putting full emotion and passion into singing. You held up your water bottle, pretending that it was a microphone, and Harry kept shifting his gaze on you, trying to keep his eyes on the road, but also wanting to look at you as you sang. He smiled to himself, absolutely loving how you were so carefree--something that he admired about you.Â
His heart fluttered, curling his lips into his mouth before he did something that was quite bold of him to do. Reaching over, he grabbed your hand, intertwining your fingers together. Your body was frozen, but you continued to sing, covering up the fact that Harry was holding your hand so casually. You were stiff as a board, so you tried loosening up, swaying your body from side to side, slightly averting your eyes towards him as he continued to drive.Â
The moonlight cast through the car window, giving him a dim glow, accentuating his features; jawline prominent, his lashes shadowed down onto his cheeks, and his eyes were calm; the light reflecting against his glassy green eyes. Your heartbeat a million miles a minute as you looked at him. You had this appreciation and admiration for him--that you were lucky and grateful that you have him and that there was nothing more beautiful than the man sitting beside you.Â
With your face on fire, you smiled as you carried on, singing with the warmth of Harryâs hand connected with yours.Â
You were sitting across Harry, munching on your sandwich as you listened to him talk about how he wanted to actually find a job. Heâs been sitting around, living quite wealthy as his inheritance sat safely. But heâd been getting bored. Every day was a routine for him and it was a pretty boring routine, he would say. The only places he really went to were the gym and the places that the two of you went together, but that was it. He needed a hobby, something that he could escape to that doesnât require breaking a sweat from punching bags and mitts.Â
âYou said you like books, so maybe you could see if the bookstore down the street from the gym is hiring. That would be a nice little place to work at,â you suggested.Â
Harryâs eyes lightened up, apart from thinking that was a great idea and the other part from being surprised that you remembered such a small detail about him when heâd talked about books briefly with you.Â
âI should definitely do that, thank you. I love that bookstore, itâs-â
âY/N?â Harry was interrupted by a man who had walked over to your table. Harry looked up, observing the guy as he was looking at you so intently. He quickly looked at you as you were looking up at the man with a shocked expression on your face, wide eyes and mouth slightly opened.Â
âUh, hi,â you said, feeling slightly uncomfortable. Your eyes glanced at Harry and he had a worried expression on his face, eyes asking if you were okay. You nodded softly, bringing your attention back to him.Â
âI-Iâve been calling the gym and paging you, but you havenât been answering any of themâŚâ the man mentioned slyly. You were quite speechless, not expecting him to be here and not knowing what to say.Â
âI, uh-â
âCan we talk right now?â He asked. You were flickering your eyes between Harry, someone that you were completely infatuated with, and the man that you were completely irritated with. But if you didnât talk to him right now, he wouldnât leave you alone and wouldnât stop calling you, so you made the mistake of saying a soft âokayâ as you got up, looking over at Harry, giving a subtle smile.Â
Just by the way he was looking at you, you knew you had regretted your decision and you wished that you hadnât given in so easily.Â
Once you were outside, you crossed your arms, in a way to seem reserved and closed off, but in reality, you really were. The uncomfortableness you felt was something you havenât felt in a while as it felt like your stomach was boiling as bile salivated your mouth. Your fists were hidden underneath your arms, clenching, and your lips were curled into your mouth to immediately spew inappropriate sayings and vile remarks.Â
âWhat do you want to talk about?â You asked, brows pinched together.Â
âIâve been trying to get a hold of you for quite a while now, but I just wanted to talk. I hate how we ended thingsâŚâ he said remorsefully. You tried not to fall for the pouty look he was giving you as if he knew quite well you would fall for it.Â
âItâs been six months, Max,â you reminded him. You and Max had an ugly breakup, and you had been picking up your own pieces yourself. You two had been together for nearly a year until he started to act differently. Noticing that he was going home late, staying at the bars until the early hours of the morning, and being quite rude and dismissive towards you, it ended in a screaming match where he ended up spitting out rude comments at you--calling you ugly, useless, and boring. It also caused him to confess that he was cheating on you for half the time you were together with him, and you thought that was a lie he made up just to make you angry, but a month after the breakup, you had found out that was true because you had accidentally bumped into the girl he was cheating on you with. At the time, you couldnât blame him because the girl was absolutely gorgeous and seemed a lot of fun, but now, you know your worth and you absolutely didnât deserve that whatsoever.Â
For six months, you hadnât seen him, but he had been leaving you countless calls to the gym phone. However, Max wouldnât dare to step foot in the gym ever again because Don had clearly threatened him when he saw Max on the street, pinning him up against the brick wall by his shirt and yelling in his face that if he ever came close to you or the gym ever again, he wouldnât see the end of the day.Â
Don wouldâve lost his shit if he saw Max in front of you.Â
âThis is pointless. I was fine living my life for the past six months without you. In fact, I havenât even thought about you until you showed up. Couldnât you see I was doing just fine? Why canât you just leave me alone?â Your tone was scornful, not wanting to be in front of him anymore but instead the lovely man inside.Â
âI just assumed you wanted some sort of closureâŚâÂ
âIf I wanted closure, then I wouldâve called you. But I donât need closure. I was doing okay-âÂ
âWith who? That man inside the restaurant?â He interrupted, brows raised. His demeanour suddenly changed just because you had given him the slightest bit of attitude. Max went from soft, wanting forgiveness to the Max that you saw last--completely offensive, rude, and a dickhead. Â
âYeah, his name is Harry, by the way. I was doing okay until you showed up!â You rolled your eyes, making your way back inside to Harry, who was waiting for you inside.Â
Of course, Max wasnât done until he got the last word, so he yelled out, âYou know, whatever youâre doing with him, heâs gonna leave you; just like how I left you.â You slowly turned around, heart aching as his words had definitely done something this time. âYou think Harry cares about you Y/N? Think again, heâs gonna leave you and youâre gonna be alone. Youâre nothing, Y/N--not without me, at least. You arenât worth anything, and you had to take over your dadâs gym to feel like you are. Stop fooling yourself.âÂ
Your eyes watered, trying your hardest not to let them slip from your eyes. You had already felt weak tearing up in front of him, so you couldnât imagine what he would think if you bawled your eyes out. Suddenly, you heard the bell above the restaurant door chime. You didnât bother turning around, but you somehow knew that it was Harry who was behind you.Â
âEverything alright here?â Harry asked warily, eyes pointed towards you.Â
âYeah, man. See you, Y/N.â With that, he walked away, hopefully for good. Harry knew everything wasnât alright with how youâre ready to burst into tears. As much as he wanted to follow him, force an answer out of him as to why you were in such distress, he was more worried about you.Â
Standing in front of you, Harry placed an arm on your shoulder, his other hand held the brown paper bag that had both of your leftovers as he didnât want to eat without you. Your body was tense, not because of Harryâs touch but because of the words that had taken such an effect on you, and you were doing everything to not break down in the middle of the sidewalk.Â
âHey, you okay?â Harry asked softly, bending down slightly to look you in the eyes. Your eyes were pointed down at the ground, thinking that if you looked Harry in the eyes, you were going to break.Â
âUh, c-can you take me to the gym, please?â You asked once you fully gained the courage to speak, but your voice was shaky.Â
Harry immediately nodded. âYeah, yeah, of course. Letâs go.â He put his arm around your shoulders and you comfortably nuzzled into his side as he guided you to his car.Â
The drive back was silentâthe complete opposite from the drive to the restaurant. Instead of happiness radiating out of your bodies, the space felt gloomy. Harryâs mind had spiraled as he drove, thinking about what that man could have possibly said to you. He was torn between wanting to be angry, but he was more concerned for you because you had never been this silent before.Â
Once Harry was in front of the gym, you immediately got out before he was able to turn off the car. Using your keys, you unlocked the front door, turning off the alarm system before throwing your purse, not caring where it landed and rushed towards the heavy bags.Â
This was where you let all your anger out. The place where you screamed at the top of your lungs with no care on who might hear you. This was your safe space, and if someone was going to judge you for utilizing your safe space, then they didnât belong there.Â
You screamed, punched, and kicked the heavy bag with full force as your tears had streamed down your face. Your heart was beating painfully with every scream you forced out of your body. Your punches were solid, making the bag swing back and forth, but your knuckles were starting to redden because you didnât wrap your hands.Â
Harry quickly followed you, a frown plastered on his face as he watched you let your anger out all on the heavy bag. He let you do your thing, watching from the sidelines before he waited for the right moment to cut in.Â
âYou. Fucking. Stupid. Piece. Of. Shit,â you yelled out with every punch. You sniffled, continuing to punch the bag, eyes glossy from your endless amount of tears.Â
The friction from the leather and your bare skin was rubbing against each other, cutting and peeling open your skin. Your hands had numbed the pain, so you carried on with your punches until Harry had wrapped his arms around your waist, pulling you into his chest and away from the heavy bag once he started to see redness and blood scattered onto your knuckles. You screamed, your body protesting, wanting to continue punching, but you knew you didnât have any more energy.Â
Turning around in his arms, your face was met with his chest, sobbing into his shirt. Harryâs hands soothed your back, comforting you as his heart ached from the sadness you radiated. Your bloody hands clutched his shirt as you cried, tears staining his shirt. Your whines and whimpers filled the empty gym, echoing back at you.Â
Everything hurtâyour heart, eyes, body, and your hands were now starting to sting. Harry held you tighter, carefully taking a seat onto the ground and bringing you down with him. You sat in between his legs and your head rested on his shoulder.Â
After a moment, he felt you calm down and your body physically relaxed. Mindlessly, his hand brushed your hair back from your forehead, pressing a kiss to your skin. Harry hadnât realized he did that until he pulled away and he hoped he hadnât crossed a line by doing that. But when he kissed your forehead, you pulled him closer, burying your face into his neck.Â
âTalk to meâtell me what you need, angel,â he said softly, wanting to help and be there for you. The nickname had completely slipped out as heâd been calling you that in his head. Heâd never seen you break down at all, so this was very new to him.Â
You shook your head, nickname going over your head. âNothing. Just you.âÂ
Harry nodded his head, heart fluttering at your words as he held you tighter. He continued to soothe your hair and back as he heard you sigh deeply at the comfort. Looking down at your hands, he realized they were still bloody and cut up, and he knew that your cuts needed to be treated as soon as possible.Â
âCan I take care of your hands? Iâm still gonna be close, just wanna bandage you up.â You sniffled, nodding your head. Harry slightly smiled, carefully getting up before helping you up. He wrapped his arm around your shoulder, first asking you where the first aid kit was, and you two walked to one of the offices to get the kit before going to the restroom. âWanna sit?â He asked, patting the cold counter. Nodding your head, you placed your hands on the counter, but he quickly stopped you, taking off his jacket for you to sit on.Â
âThank you,â you softly said to him gratefully before jumping to sit on the counter.Â
Harry opened the box that contained multiple and different types of bandages, an instant cold pack, thermometer, antiseptic wipes, and scissors. Harry washed his hands well before grabbing the antiseptic wipe and ripping it open. He situated himself between your legs, gently grabbing your hand to rest on his. He looked up at you, first asking you if it was okay to start, and when you said yes, he slowly and carefully started to wipe the area around the cut.Â
You watched him as he cleaned your cuts; he was so focused on wiping the blood that stained your skin and was careful not to press too hard because you were starting to bruise already. As you watched him, you felt immensely grateful. Itâd been a while since you had a true friend that would help you with anything and take care of you. Your feelings for him had skyrocketed, heart pounding so loud you could feel it in your ears.Â
âThe guy at the restaurant was my ex-boyfriend, Max,â you suddenly said. Harry looked up at you to let you know that he was listening as he continued to clean your hands. âIt was a bit of a messy breakup; he called me names, insulted me, and confessed that he was cheating on me. When I saw him at the restaurant, that was the first time since the breakup, and it was like I relived that day again.âÂ
âDid he say anything to you?â Harry asked, holding back his anger because he knew the answer, Harry watched through the window the entire time and noticed your posture and demeanor change, causing Harry to quickly pay and rush outside just in case anything happened.Â
âY-Yeah.â Your voice croaked. âSaid I didnât amount to anythingâthat I wasnât anything without him-â
âThatâs bullshit, Y/N-â
âIâm so mad at myself.â Tears were forming in your eyes again as you looked down at your lap. Redness brimmed your eyelids as you sniffled.Â
âWhat? Why?â Harry asked confusingly.Â
You shook your head at yourself. âFor years, Iâve been trainingâlearning how to defend myself for when I need it. I was raised to have a strong mindset, to not take shit from anyone because Don told me not to. But when he came around, I didn't say a word, let alone move a muscle. I hate how he made me weak. I hate how I didnât stand up for myself.â Your voice was shaky and your tears streamed down your face as you paused for a moment. âHe told me that you were gonna leave me just like everyone else in my life did,â you added.Â
Harry was seething, breathing in through his nose as his face hardened. He masked his anger because his priority was to comfort you, so he tried to let go of his anger for a moment.Â
âListen to me.â He placed his hands on the outside of your legs, bending down to look you in the eyes. Your glossy eyes looked at him, a small pout on your face. âYouâre the strongest person I know, alright, angel?â This time, you heard the pet name loud and clear, making your heart do backflips. âYou didnât let him walk all over you, no, youâre much more mature than him to ever start something. He wanted to see you angry, and frustrated. He wanted to add fuel to the fire, and you didnât give him the satisfaction. You arenât weak at all. Youâve got a strong heart, and Iâm sure that punch of yours to his nose would damage it for good.âÂ
You breathed out a chuckle at his last statement, nodding, knowing he was right. Harry smiled, dimples showing proudly as he wiped the tears that were falling from your eyes. Giving him a half-smile, you leaned forward, pressing your face against his collarbones. He stood up straight to wrap his arms around your back. You daringly placed a kiss onto the exposed skin that was peeking out from his shirt. Harryâs face warmed up at the touch that was so soft and delicate, yet felt like it was burning through his skin. You pulled away, looking up at him as you thanked him.Â
Your eyes darted between his eyes and his lips as your face was just inches away from him. His face was delicate and his beauty shined over the darkness of the world. It was as if he didnât seem real like you couldnât believe someone so beautiful and breathtaking was standing right in front of you. You studied every curve, movement, and freckle on his face as they all very well defined him, heightening your admiration with every look of his perfections and imperfections.Â
Harry blushed under your stare, clearing his throat as he felt nervous. He pulled his face away a tad bit, offering you a small smile. âOf course. Always gonna be here for you. Now, let me just finish cleaning your hands before taking you home.âÂ
You nodded, letting him finish with his task. His hands were gentle as he wrapped the bandage around your hand. Your heart was filled with so much admiration and gratitude that you simply wouldnât know what to do if Harry werenât there today. The growing feelings had taken over your heart and mind that you were a bit scared, but nonetheless, you let them take over.Â
Harry sat at the bar next to Benny, nursing a beer he had ordered ten minutes ago. It had been a while since they hung out together, but that was because Benny was trying to get his wife pregnant, so when Marianne calls, they spent their time baby-making. The other reason was that Harry was spending most of his time with you, which he loved every minute of.Â
âSo, a little bird told me that youâve been going to the gym on Saturdays now,â Benny mentioned, a hint of tease in his tone.Â
Harry chuckled. âReally? And who told you that?â He asked, taking a sip of his beer.Â
âStarts with a D and ends with an N,â Benny laughed, giving you the obvious answer.Â
âWell, Iâve been going in on Saturdays because Don always schedules our training sessions on Saturdays. Nothing else,â he slightly lied. After his first training day with Don, Harry told Don that he wanted to continue training with him because he gets a good workout with him rather than by himself, hitting the heavy bag or speed bag, so Don always scheduled for Saturdays since those were the easiest days.Â
But other than the training sessions, he also got to see you on Saturdays, which he really enjoyed because sometimes after his workout, you two would grab a bite to eat or plan to hang out later that day. He liked it, he liked you.Â
âHmm, interesting. It doesnât have to do with a particular trainer who also happens to own the gym?â Benny raised his brows.Â
âNot really into Don, to be honest,â Harry joked, bouncing around Bennyâs question. They both laughed, slamming their hand on the bar top.Â
âReally, though. Iâm happy for you. Youâve been in such a happier mood, and thatâs all I wantâis for you to be happy. Sheâs doing a great job,â Benny said honestly. Seeing his friend happy after everything heâs been through had lifted a certain weight off of his shoulders, and it seemed like he didnât need to worry about Harry.Â
Harry simply nodded, smiling as words werenât necessary. He always felt like Benny was always concerned about him, and although he appreciated him being worried, he didnât need to anymore because Harry was finally feeling much happier than he was before.Â
âThere you are.â A voice was suddenly heard next to Harry along with a hand on his shoulder. Harry tensed up, and he hadnât in a while, but he knew that wasnât your voice nor was it your touch. Harry turned his head to the side to find Lizette sitting on the stool next to him, giving him a smug smile. He didnât say anything but look at Benny, and saw his eyes narrow, confused as to why Lizette was here. âIâve been calling your home and paging you. Why havenât you been answering me?â She pouted.Â
Harry knew that pout all too well. She used it to trick you into saying yes to her and getting what she wanted, but Harry was stronger than that now; he knew how to hold his ground.Â
He hadnât seen Lizette ever since the week before he joined Donâs Box. With all of his time spent with you, he hadnât really thought about Lizette, if heâs being honest. You had fully taken every inch and space of his mind that it was maximum capacity, but he still found a way to make space from the invading thoughts of you.Â
âJust beenâŚbusy, Lizette, thatâs all,â he said, not giving her his full attention as he looked at his bottle.Â
âToo busy for me?âÂ
âYeah, something like that.â He didnât want to outright be rude to her because naturally, Harry was a kind and thoughtful man, so he kept his harsh thoughts to himself.Â
She inched closer to Harry, close enough to where her mouth was against his ear as she whispered, âWell, since I so happened to run into you, how about we go back to yours?â
Harry took a deep breath. He felt like he was his old self againâmaking impulsive and not so thought out decisions that end up fucking him and his emotions over in the future. Being with Lizette was something, and it helped make him feel a little less lonely, even though she immediately left right after she got what she wanted.Â
But Harry hadnât felt lonely at the moment and in months. He had his best friend next to him, having a drink, and he had you. He wasnât lonely at all. So, why was he getting off the stool and putting his coat on before closing his tab for the night?Â
Bennyâs eyes widened, looking at Harry as if he was asking what the actual fuck was he doing. Harry simply shrugged, patting his friend on the back before following Lizette out of the bar. The air was cold, but it wasnât a delightful cold that he wanted to be in. It almost seemed kind of eerie as the gray clouds hovered over them.Â
Lizette hugged Harryâs arm. âIâm glad you agreed.â She leaned up to kiss his cheek, but he immediately pulled away, taking his arm out of her hold.Â
âYou should go home,â he told her. Her mouth opened, but nothing came out as she was confused. âGet a ride home. Iâm not taking you home nor am I going with you. I donât want to do this anymore, Lizette.âÂ
âBut you came with me-â
âThat didnât mean I was saying yes to your offer. I came out here with you to get you off of me and not embarrass me in front of my friend and the entire bar.â Harryâs voice was stern as he crossed his arms. âI know youâve never really cared about me, so please just do me a favor and leave. Iâm happier now-â
âYouâre happier? With some other girl, huh?â Harry nodded and Lizette rolled her eyes, expression annoyed as she was beginning to get angry and defensive. âYou think she cares? Guess what, Harry, she doesnât. Sheâs gonna leave you just like your mom left you, your ex-girlfriend left you. Remember when she fucked your best friend in college? That she left you to be with him? And look at them now, theyâre married! They donât give a single fuck about you! What makes you think that this girl youâre seeing does?âÂ
Lizette had definitely hit a nerve. Harry had gone four years without hearing the story on how his ex left him for one of his friends from uni. The situation was quite sad, and it left Harry in pieces. Not to mention, Lizette was his exâs best friend and she somehow seduced him into regularly having sex with her, which wasnât entirely her fault because Harry was lonely and needed to feel something to fill the void of his loneliness.Â
âDonât think youâre so easy to love, Harry. It takes a lot of effort to do that, especially with you. Youâre gonna continue being scared and closed off, and people are gonna continue to run away-â
âHarry?â Lizette was suddenly interrupted by you. You were walking to the bar because Benny had invited you, thinking that it wouldâve been a nice surprise for Harry and to hang out with just the three of you. But you had seen Harry and some woman on the street and his face looked angry. âUh, hi.âÂ
You turned towards the unknown woman as she looked you up and down before turning towards Harry, raising her brows as she figured out who you were and who Harry had been spending so much time with.Â
Harry completely blocked you out, his attention was towards the statements Lizette had made. He had been doing so much better, and all of a sudden the relapse hit him ten times harder, like his accomplishment of being okay with himself completely disappeared.Â
 Was he that hard to love? He knew that he pushed people away, thatâs for sure, but he didnât realize that it was difficult to love him. Harry then thought about the people that had left him because they didnât love him enough to stay. His ex left him for his friend, it seemed like his mum had forgotten about him, and soon enough, Benny was gonna get tired of him and so were you.Â
âAnd you are?â You asked, scowling at the woman in front of you. Lizette smirked, seeing as there was an opportunity right in front of her. She didnât find youÂ
intimidating whatsoever.Â
âOh, guess Harry didnât tell you, but weâve been sleeping with each other for years. Friends with benefits, if you will,â Lizette answered with some sass and a snarl to her tone as she watched your expression turn into a hurtful one.Â
Your face had softened as your eyes welled up with tears, but you didnât dare let them fall. You looked at Harry and it seemed like he was in his head, but you had no clue he was âseeing someone.â It felt like you had been cheated on, even though going out as friends didnât mean anything to a fuck buddy. All of the moments you spent with himâthe laughs, storytelling, training, and tension-filled moments had connected you both to one another. It made you feel special that you were seeing a side of Harry that no one else had, but you were wrong.Â
âGuess youâre the new girl heâs seeing?âÂ
âWhatâs it to you?â Your brows knitted.Â
Lizette shrugged. âNothing. Just know that Harryâs difficult and loveless. So, just get out while you can.â She reached over to touch your shoulder, but you quickly stepped back before she could. She was talking as if Harry wasnât right next to you two, and if this was a âwomen looking out for womenâ type of situation, you werenât going to accept it because she outright just insulted Harry.Â
You were livid as your eyes turned dark, stepping closer to her. âStay away from him, or I swear to god-â
âOr what? What are you gonna do?â Lizette challenged, stepping closer. She was slightly taller than you since she wore four-inch leather boots.
âWanna find out? Next time I see you with him or hear you talk shit about him again, then youâll find out because I can guarantee youâll never see the light of day.â You held eye contact with her as she looked at you with such fierce emotion.Â
âCute. Harryâs got a little bodyguard,â she scoffed, stepping back. âI should go,â Lizette suddenly said, breaking you out of your heartbreaking thoughts. âIâll call you,â she told Harry, despite what you had just said. It seemed like he wasnât even listening as his blank stare was trained onto the ground. She walked away, her heels clicking against the cement. The satisfaction she felt right now felt good, knowing her words had definitely affected you both.Â
When Lizette was far enough, you turned back towards Harry. This time, he was looking at you in a confused state, and it didnât seem like him.Â
âI-I didnât know you were seeing someone-â
âYou should goâŚâ he said straightforwardly. You raised your brows as you were taken back.Â
âIâm sorry?âÂ
âYou should leave. For good. Get out of my life while you can. I promise I wonât get mad.â His voice cracked and was shaky. He couldnât even look you in the eye while he was talking because he knew that would break his heart even more, especially if you were to actually leave for good. The negative thoughts had taken over, and this was what he didâpushing people away and giving them a way out before they realized that Harry wasnât a lovable or worthy enough person to stay around for.Â
âWhat makes you think Iâm going anywhere?â You questioned confusingly. You wondered if he even thought about the conversation you two had a few moments ago when you had told him that you were staying for good.Â
âThey all do, anyway. They all leave and they never come back.â His voice was starting to raise slightly, frustration and anger pouring out of his veins as his eyes were starting to tear up. A pout remained on your face as you watched the distress never leave his angelic face. âJust please go.â
âIâm not going anywhere-â
âWhy wonât you-â
âBecause I care! Why donât you get that?â You raised your voice, not too loud to startle him, but enough to convey your emotions and frustrations to him.Â
âBecause youâre going to eventually! Youâre gonna leave and use me and never love me. Iâm used to it, so you could go now!â Harry was starting to cry, light sobs were coming out of his mouth as he was trying to hold them back. You took a step forward, wanting to comfort him as your heart broke at the sight, but he stepped back, not wanting your touch.Â
Your heart sank when he stepped back away from you because he had never done that before. You two were always comfortable with one another that both of your touches had felt like security. Your tears had streamed down your face, quickly wiping them.Â
âHarry, Iâm not gonna leaveâŚâÂ
âItâs fine. You donât know what itâs like for someone to leave and never come back. You donât know what itâs like to feel completely loveless that someone physically had to get out of your life and not want to be in it anymore. You donât know what itâs like!â He spoke firmly as he cried, tugging his curly locks in frustration.Â
âI donât know what itâs like?â You spoke loudly, and Harry looked up at you. âI know exactly what itâs like because my own mother left me when I was eleven-years-old, and I have no idea why!â You vented, sniffling. âYou donât think I know what itâs like to constantly wonder what youâre doing wrong because the people that were supposed to be there for you completely vanished? Because I do! I know that feeling quite well. So, donât tell me I donât know shit because it seems like weâre in the same boat.âÂ
Harry was speechless. Sure, you two had been close and had talked about your lives and childhood, but this was something that you two had to dig deep for because it wasnât something you regularly spoke about nor did you tell new people that youâd just met.Â
âI-Iâm sorry I had no ideaâŚâÂ
âYou couldnât have had any idea, Harry. But just know that that day my mom left me still confuses me. The look on my dadâs face when he told me that mom left still haunts me. The crying I did since I was eleven hurts me because she didnât love me enough to stay.âÂ
âY/NâŚâÂ
âItâs fine, I get it. I know weâve known each other for only a few months, but I did not expect this from you, especially because of all that weâd talked about. Iâd say Iâm the newest person in your life but Iâm also the closest, besides Benny. So, donât shut me out.â Your heart was beating through your chest and all of your emotions began to pile up like they were leaves, falling from the branches of the trees.Â
Harry looked defeated, knowing that you were right. He sniffled, not knowing what else to say because all he felt was a painful feeling in his chest since Lizette had gone up to him at the bar.Â
When he didnât say anything, you just nodded, knowing that it was best to give him some space so he could realize that you were here for him and that you werenât going anywhere.Â
âCall me when you wanna talkâŚâ you told him before turning around. Harry watched youâhe knew that he should go after you, not be scared and let you in, perhaps tell you that heâs practically in love with you, but he doesnât move, feet glued to the ground.Â
When you were only a few feet away, you turned back around, knowing that you hadnât gotten your final words out yet. Harry looked up when he heard footsteps approaching him.Â
âFuck whatever people say to you; trying to degrade and bring you down because whatever they say, itâs not true. I will always be there to defend you, Harry. Donât think I wonât be because I will always be on your side.â You paused for a moment. Your heart was fully opening and was beginning to be vulnerable. Trying not to let it overwhelm you, you continued. âDonât think youâre not easy to love because you are. Youâre extremely easy to love, yâknow that? I would know becauseâŚI love you. And thatâs crazy to say because weâve only known each other for a short period of time, but I canât help what I feel. So, there you go.âÂ
Before Harry was able to say anything, you walked away, and he could hear you sniffling and crying. Harryâs mouth was ajar, completely speechless and shocked, but his heart fluttered as he took in your words. You really loved him, he thought. No one had said those words and really meant them or they hadnât felt real to him when he heard them, so the shock that he felt was new.Â
You were far enough where Harry couldnât see you. He hadnât even moved an inch, and he knew that later on, he was going to be very disappointed in himself for not chasing you down and telling you that he loved you too. But for now, he needed to take it all in and hope that when he did tell you, it wouldnât be too late.Â
Taking a deep breath, you walked inside to your apartment, sniffling as you went straight to the bathroom to take a long and hot shower. Before you left your place to go to the bar, you had been contemplating your appearance because you wanted to look good. Nerves were all over your body as you were getting ready, and you sulked at how the events had completely turned tonight around.Â
When you were out of the shower and changed, ready to get into bed despite the night only being nine in the evening, your pager beeped. Picking it up off the bedside table, the message was sent from Harry, reading â143.â You raised your brows, reading it again and reading it once more. Your heart was pounding, studying the numbers to make sure you read them right. The simple code for âI love youâ was printed on your pager and you wanted to scream.Â
Before you could actually scream, there was a knock on your door. You walked quickly, opening it as Harry was standing behind it, holding his pager out as he smiled softly at you. You had just finished crying in the shower, so your eyes were red and a tad bit swollen, but you were close to crying again because of how overwhelmed you felt.Â
âDid you mean it?â You asked hesitantly, holding your pager up.Â
âOf course I do. Did you mean it?â He retaliated back, wondering if you meant your three words as well.Â
âOf course I mean it, Harry. Why wouldnât I?â You asked, wiping the tear that had slipped down your face.Â
âBecause I love you. I love you so fuckinâ much that it hurts,â he claimed in one breath, feeling the tension and weight that he held in his shoulders release. âYouâre everything to me, and you make my world less frightening. I just see your pretty smile and my day completely turns into a great one. I donât wanna waste a day not telling you that now, and it feels pretty damn good to say it.â
You slightly nodded until you remembered one of your concerns earlier. âWhat about Lizette?âÂ
âLizette was someone I used to sleep with. I havenât seen her nor slept with her in monthsâbefore I even met you, I promise. And Iâm sorry for assuming that you didnât know what it felt like for someone to leave and that you had to tell me under those circumstances. But just know, that Iâm not gonna leave, unless you tell me to, that is.â Every bit of him was opening up and he wasnât hiding away. He was being completely vulnerable and it had scared him a bit, but when his words came out, he felt himself get better.Â
You looked at him through your glassy eyes, vision blurred for a moment until you adjusted them and clearly saw the gorgeous man in front of you. His eyes were filled with tears as well, and you thought, how could someone still look so pretty while they cried? But that was Harry for you; someone who was genuinely beautiful no matter what. Someone who had a heart of gold and a flashing smile that made your heart swoon and knees weak.Â
You simply reached your hand out and Harry walked towards you, into your apartment as he came close to your face as your bodies were pressed up against one another. The back of his fingertips gently brushed the side of your face, admiring the beauty that stood before him as he opened his heart up completely, not wanting to go another day without saying those three words back to you.Â
The corners of your lips turned up and your tears were replaced by happy ones. You had walked away from Harry after you said I love you because he was looking at you like he had seen a ghost, not a friendly one, but more of a scary one. So, hearing those words were just music to your ears.Â
âYou mean that? That you love me?â You wanted to hear it again and again and again.Â
âEver word. I love you, angel,â he repeated, adding your nickname. He pressed his forehead against yours, inches away from your lips.Â
âNever stop calling me that,â you instructed him, smiling. The first time he had said it, you came to the conclusion that you absolutely loved hearing that name come out of his mouth, especially if it was specifically for you.Â
âOnly if you never stop telling me that you love me,â he slightly smirked, dimples poking out. He was so immensely happy that his heart could burst just because of the love that he felt for you.Â
You giggled. âI love you, baby-âÂ
âI, uh, wait. Do you mindâŚnot calling me that?â He hesitated, and you raised your brows confused. âSomeone else called me that, and I just donât like hearing it. Never have since it came out of her mouth,â he explained shyly.Â
A sudden realization came to your face as you realized that Lizette probably called him that. âOkay. I wonât call you that, everâŚdarling.â Harryâs lips began to slowly turn up, already liking that name so much better than the other one. He hugged you; and you smiled, closing and opening your eyes to make sure you werenât dreaming. Your arms snaked around Harryâs waist as he cradled your delicate face in his hands.Â
âNever stop calling me that,â he repeated your words as you two smiled and laughed until your jaws started hurting.Â
His eyes flickered down to your lips and back up to your eyes. You pursed your lips, blushing as you watched his eyes glance back up and down. You rubbed the tip of your nose against his, pulling him closer; hearts beating in sync as butterflies filled your stomach.Â
He brushed his lips against yours before fully connecting them, feeling every spark and shiver that traveled down his spine. You smiled into the kiss as the softness of his lips moved and molded against yours, feeling completely in bliss. The way his lips slotted perfectly with yours made you saturated and dizzy off of his love and touch. Butterflies were still in your stomach, but they were calm like they had been fluttering around for this moment, his touch, in order to relax.Â
Pulling back, he smiled down at you, eyes love-struck, before giving you another kiss, and pulling away and kissing you again once more.Â
âKissing you is my new favorite thing,â he stated, drunk off kisses. You breathed out a giggled, wrapping your arms around his neck as you breathed in his scent. You felt his breath against your neck, feeling completely happy and content in each otherâs arms.Â
There was no fear in the air; just the two of you with open hearts and arms, welcoming in the new and profound feeling that you both took in, knowing that itâs going to change everything for the better.Â
You pulled him inside and Harry kicked the door closed with his foot. His arms were holding you tight as you walked back to your bedroom. Opening your mouth slightly, Harry took the chance to meet your tongue with his, swiveling and tasting each other causing a shiver to run down your spine.Â
You pulled back when Harry laid down on the bed, taking in the gushy feeling you had as you smiled.Â
âWant you,â you simply stated.Â
âYou have me, angel.âÂ
âI know, but I want you. Need you,â your eyes pleaded for his touch, to feel him inside of you, for him to make you feel good. You desperately craved for his hands on all of you, his mouth kissing every inch of your skin, and his love passionately pouring out of his veins.Â
Harry nodded, smiling. âNeed you too. Need you forever,â he said, connecting your lips again as he hovered over you.Â
You two kissed for a while, giggling against each otherâs lips and having his weight on top of you as your hands roamed his back. You bucked your hips into his, feeling the hard-on that was growing in his pants, which made Harry grind into your center, moaning softly into your mouth.Â
âPlease do something,â you said, and he nodded, getting off of you before taking his jacket and shirt off swiftly. His tattoos were showcased in front of you and all you wanted to do was kiss every single one of them. âYouâre beautiful, Harry,â you complimented, and he blushed, a soft âthank youâ came out of his mouth. Next was his pants, and before he was able to take his briefs off, you stopped him, telling him that you wanted to do it.Â
You got off the bed, switching positions with him as you were now standing up as Harry laid down on the bed. You smiled, eyes glancing all around his body. He suddenly felt shy and intimidated under your stare, but he knew he had no reason to be because you were simply admiring him. This time around when it came to physically be vulnerable with someone, he knew he didnât have to worry anymore when it came to you.Â
You took off your lilac nightgown, exposing your body to Harryâs eyes. Your nipples had hardened due to the exposure to the cold. His eyes glimmered as he gazed at your stunning and beautiful body. Every curve and inch was something he tried to remember, and he was quite speechless at the sight. He reached out, gently grabbing your hips as he roamed his hands up your body and to your breasts, grabbing both in each of his hands.Â
He looked up at you and you smiled down at him as he placed his mouth on your left pebbled nipple, sucking and licking it as his hand fondled with the other. You laced your fingers through his hair, scratching his scalp as he did so, switching over to your right nipple.Â
Harry pulled away, looking at you. âYouâre an actual angel. Youâre so beautiful.âÂ
âHarryâŚâ you blushed.Â
âYou are, angel. So beautiful. Canât believe I get to see you like this.â He kissed the valley of your breasts and down your stomach before getting up and pushing you down onto the bed with ease. He settled in between your legs, arms hooked under your thighs.Â
Continuing kissing down your stomach, he reached the hem of your underwear, looking up at you before asking, âCan I take these off? Wanna make you feel goodâthe same way you always make me feel good.âÂ
âPlease. Take them off. Wanna feel your mouth on me,â you pleaded as your arousal heightened. You wrapped your legs around his back, eagerly pulling his head towards your center, making Harry let out a chuckle.Â
âEasy, angel. Not going anywhere.â Harry kissed your stomach once more before pulling off your beige underwear. You were glistening below him; you made a complete mess in your panties. âFuck, youâre so wet. This all for me?âÂ
âMhm. All for you, Harry, please,â you whispered impatiently. Harryâs dirty talk had only increased your need for him as it was quite surprising to see this side of him since he was more on the shy and reserved side outside, but nonetheless, you loved both sidesâyou loved him.Â
Harry leaned down, pressing multiple kisses to your inner thighs, nibbling on the skin gently. You bucked your hips as he trailed his kisses towards your pussy that was eagerly waiting to be touched and licked. When he got there, he pressed a kiss to your clit before kitten-licking your sensitive button, making you softly moan.Â
His tongue licked into the entrance of your pussy, gathering your arousal on the tip of his tongue to lubricate your clit even more.Â
âFuck,â you groaned as your hands found his curly locks, tugging at them gently.Â
âYou could do that harder, I donât mind it,â Harry told you before going back to eating you out. You pulled harder and Harry deeply groaned against you, sending vibrations up your body.Â
His hands wandered around your body, feeling the softness of your skin against his hands. Your skin had formed goosebumps due to his touch, and Harry smoothed out your skin so you were warm. He sucked on your clit quite harshly, earning a moan of his name from your lips as he grabbed both of your tits in his hands, squeezing them.Â
You placed your hands on top of his, squeezing them with him, and Harry almost came at the sight of that. There you were, moaning his name out, getting your pussy eaten, and squeezing your tits on top of his hands. A sight he truly was lucky enough to see.Â
Harry pulled one hand away to rub your clit as he tongued around your wet hole before tongue fucking you. He rubbed your clit at a moderate speed, enough for you to thrust your hips off the bed. Harry pulled his other hand that was still on one of your breasts away to pin your hips down onto the bed.Â
âStay still for me, angel,â he instructed, voice deep that made you even wetter. âYou taste so good. Could eat you out all day.âÂ
âHarryâŚâ you trailed, whining desperately for your release. âW-WannaâŚcumâŚneed to.â Your sentences were broken and Harry thought that was a good sign, knowing that he was doing so well you couldnât form a proper sentence.Â
âTell me what you need. Let me know, so I can get you there.âÂ
âF-Fingers,â you told him, and he immediately brought his fingers to your clit, rubbing it before inserting two fingers inside your pussy. He thrust slowly, curling his fingers up to feel your walls.
He felt you pulsing around him as your legs were wrapped tightly around his back as you screamed his name over and over again.Â
âCâmon, love. Give me one,â he encouraged, thrusting his fingers a bit faster.Â
Once he hit the spot over and over again, you saw stars. Your vision had gone white for a few seconds, and you felt dizzy. The pleasure that ran through your body was overwhelming in the best way possible and you choked out a few sobs. It had hit you like a brick that you saw coming, but you were still surprised and shocked by the impact.Â
Your hands held Harryâs hair tight that he thought for a moment that you might actually rip it off. Harry rubbed your pussy as you came down from your high, licking your orgasm that was seeping through your cunt, taking every drop of it. He looked up to see your head thrown back, chest heaving, and a vein that was bulging against your skin. He kissed your thighs while his other hand trailed across your body.Â
When you finally were able to catch your breath, Harry kissed up your body, leaving the softest and loving kisses to your skin as you were quite sensitive. You grabbed his face, bringing his lips to yours as you immediately stuck your tongue in his mouth, swirling it with his to taste yourself on himâa mixture of his taste and your orgasm all on his tongue had made you wetter.Â
Harry was grinding himself against your leg, trying to relieve some pressure.Â
âWant you,â you told him once he pulled away, looking at him intently.Â
âYou sure?âÂ
âAbsolutely. Please? Only if you want to-â
âI definitely want to. Just wanna make sure you were sure,â he breathed out a chuckle.Â
âCourse I want to.â There was a bit of silence between you two as you were simply just admiring him as he hovered over you. âAre you gonna fuck me, Harry?â You broke the silence, and Harry broke out of his trance, shyly giggling before getting off the bed.Â
He peeled away his briefs, cock standing straight up from the slight painful restraint. He was bigâgirth and length wise, and you felt your mouth salivating from just looking at him. He got back on the bed, in between your legs as he sat on his knees. Spitting on his hand, he grabbed a hold of his dick, stroking it to relieve the pressure. The view was beautiful in every single way possible, and you didnât dare to bat an eye because you didnât want to miss one second of it.Â
Wanting to take over for him, you reached forward, replacing his hand with yours as you slowly stroked his cock for him. Harry had a smug smile on his face but soon changed into a face of pure pleasure as your hand worked against him. His mouth was open as he let out a soft moan, looking down at your eyes as you were looking up, completely loving his reaction to your touch.Â
âYouâre so pretty, Harry,â you complimented as you continued to touch him. Your other hand reached forward to fondle with his balls, rolling them into your hand as Harry whimpered. âLove seeing you like this. Most gorgeous man Iâve seen in my life.âÂ
âPlease, angel, youâre being too niceâŚâ he managed to groan out, hands gripping your thighs.Â
âBut itâs true. Look so pretty when youâre like this, but also when youâre hitting the heavy bags. When we go out to eat and you mindlessly drink your entire drink while waiting for the food. But I think youâll look extra pretty than you already are if you cum.â Your words of declaration were getting him on the edge as you stroke him. The way your voice slightly changed as you looked up at him with the most innocent eyes made him thrust into your hand, gripping the flesh of your skin as he threw his head back.Â
âYou think so?âÂ
âMhm. Gonna be so pretty when you cum all over my body, my tits. Can you do that? For me, can you do that? Please?â You were completely begging for it, but even with all the begging, he knew that you had all the control right now.Â
Your feet rubbed his calves up and down, and it was the simplest touch, but it heightened Harryâs need to let go.Â
âWanna cum for you, yeah.â His breaths were heavy and harsh as your touch was focused on his tip, wrapping your delicate hands around the head where he was most sensitive.Â
Harryâs moans stuttered as a series of profanities slipped from his lips, spilling onto your stomach and breasts. You smiled to yourself as you studied his face when he came undone; his mouth was open, occasionally biting his lip, and eyes shut closed as his head was thrown backâhe was the most beautiful person youâd ever seen, and the fact that you got to see him like this was an honor.Â
When he came down from his high, he slowly opened his eyes, meeting yours, staring right at him. You smirked, body covered in his orgasm, and he thought that was a picture worth taking. You were gorgeous covered in his pleasure that you caused, and you seemed to love it too since you made no effort to wipe it off.Â
Boldly, he leaned down, dragging his tongue from your stomach to your tit, spending the most time on your breasts as he nibbled and licked your nipples, collecting his orgasm from your skin and held it on the tip of his tongue until he reached your mouth. You willingly opened your mouth as his tongue delved right in, feeding you his cum.Â
You two passionately kissed, tasting him ever so sensually. You moaned into his mouth, thinking about how the sight of Harry licking his orgasm off of your body was the sexiest thing youâd ever seen. With your hips jerking up, you felt yourself getting wet again and in need to release once more.Â
You whimpered, pulling away. âPlease. Need you so bad.â Harry nodded, agreeing.Â
âCondom?â He asked, and you immediately reached over to your bedside table, ripping open the condom before rolling it onto his dick that was still hard.Â
Harry curled in his lips, watching you. You gave him a few extra strokes for good measure, earning a soft moan from his mouth. He took his length in his hand, running the tip up and down your slit, collecting your arousal and lubricating his cock. He gave you one last look and you nodded before he slowly pushed in, indulging in your wetness and softness.Â
A moan came out of both of your mouths, feeling completely full and warm for one another with the stretch Harry had on you. He planted his elbows on both sides of you, holding himself up over you as he slowly began to thrust.Â
âFuck,â he groaned. âFeel so good for me.â He placed a kiss on your lips as he whispered. He found a rhythm as he started to move faster, rocking his hips against yours, making you moan.Â
It was a feeling like no other, and it was the amount of love you two had for one another that made this experience much more special. Love was practically oozing out of both of your veins, filling the room to its maximum capacity as the both of you moaned out in pleasure.Â
You wrapped your legs around his waist and your arms looped around his back, hugging him closer to you as if he couldnât get closer. You whined into his ear, the sounds of your pleasure were music to his eyes, sending a shiver down his body, making him jerk. But that jolt had hit your g-spot, and you screamed out in ecstasy.Â
âRight there. Keep doing that. Keep fucking me,â you managed to say. Harry maintained his pace, going deeper, and fucking you into oblivion as you kept crying and screaming his name out.Â
Harryâs lips attached to your neck, nibbling and licking your skin, leaving a few decent size love bites that he was sure to admire when theyâd fully formed. Your nails had raked down his back, leaving a burning but pleasurable sting down his skin, letting him know that he was doing an amazing job.Â
âYou like that?â He groaned into your ear, leaving chills rising onto your skin.Â
âMhm. Just like that. Donât stop. I-Iâm so close.â You threw your head back into the pillows, and Harry took the opportunity to attack your exposed neck with kisses again. Your hands found Harryâs hair, tugging at his curls as he kissed you. That encouraged him to fuck you harder and faster, repeatedly hitting your special spot. âO-OhâŚâÂ
âCome on, angel love. Cum for me, please. Wanna see you make a mess around me,â he encouraged you.Â
With a few more thrusts, you were done. You had fully and completely released around him as your orgasm hit you like a ton of bricks. Your vision had gone white for a few seconds, head dizzy, and your breaths were caught in your throat as your hips involuntarily jolted, meeting his thrusts that were fucking you through your high.Â
Harry started to thrust sloppily, burying his face in your neck as he spilled into the condom. His hot breath was against your skin as he started to slow down, coming down from his orgasm.Â
The room was silent as the only sounds present were the heavy breaths and the post-orgasmic whimpers coming from your mouth as you two held one another. Your nails gently scratched down his back, contrasting to the desperate and needy scratches that you had given him just a few minutes ago.Â
Harry lifted his head up, meeting your eyes before connecting his lips against yours, tongue meeting first before your lips moved in sync so passionately and lovingly that you both unspokenly agreed to never taste another pair of lips again.Â
âI love you so much,â Harry said, resting his chin on your chest.Â
You smiled down at him, eyes gleaming as you looked at your love, your entire heart, the man that had stolen your breath and heart just by one look.Â
âAnd I love you too.âÂ
Waking up to the warmth of the body next to you was your favorite thing in the morningâhad been for six months now. The sight next to you was something you wouldnât get used to as you always found yourself feeling so lucky every single time you woke up next to him.Â
But a pout formed onto your face when you saw that the space next to you was empty. The crinkled yellow sheets were left, missing a certain person that you had been excited to see this morning since you closed your eyes the night prior.Â
Turning over to your bedside table, you grabbed your pager, seeing if you had any messages, and one specifically stood out to you, making you sleepily smile at your pager.Â
âGoodmorning, angel,â Harry greeted as he stood in the doorway of your bedroom. He was wearing a gray sweatsuit, holding a white paper bag in one hand and a smoothie tray, that held two smoothies, in the other hand with a loving smile plastered on his face, making his dimples poke out.Â
âMm. Hi, darling.â Your arms reached forward, gesturing him to come to you, and he gladly did, situating himself on your body as you wrapped your arms around him.Â
You two stayed like that for a moment, basking in the presence and gratitude of one another. It was nice until your stomach started growling, making Harry chuckle.Â
âCâmon, gotta feed my girl before we head to the gym.â He got off of you, helping you up and out of the bed before helping you make the bed. He walked over to the kitchen before you went to the restroom, and when you walked out, Harry had your breakfast set on a plate.Â
You two made light conversation, mostly enjoying the silence and tastiness of the food before you got ready to go to the gym.Â
When you walked into Donâs Box, you were immediately greeted by a few of the members, giving you high fives, as well as saying hi to Harry. The entire gym had found out you two were together when they started to notice Harry coming into the gym almost every day and staying until the gym closed, so a few people had their speculations. Don was certain you two would get together from the very beginning, and he had told you that the only reason he was trying to act intimidating when Harry first walked in was that he sensed that something would happen, and he was right, something did happen.Â
Benny was ecstatic; jokingly telling Harry that he could now spend time with his wife since you had taken all of Harryâs time now, which Benny earned a push from Harry towards the ropes of the ring. Bennyâs wife was also pregnant and wanted Harry to be the godfather, which Harry immediately took on that responsibility and role. But that also meant since you and Harry were planning on staying together for the long run, you were becoming a godmother as well, which you were very excited about.Â
You climbed up into the ring as Harry followed. You had a day off, and no one needed your attention other than Harry, so you helped him put on his gloves after you wrapped his hands in tape, and you put on your mitts, making sure they were tight before clapping the mitts togetherâHarry punched his gloves together, making sure they were comfortable.Â
You raised your brows at him teasingly. âReady, darling?âÂ
âReady as always, my angel,â he responded, and you smirked.Â
âGive me a good one. Give me 1.âÂ
talk to me about your favorite moments, your thoughts and feelings about this pls! thank you for reading <3
#timetravelathon#harry styles smut#harry styles angst#harry styles fanfiction#harry styles fluff#harry styles writing#harry styles one shot#harry styles imagine#harry styles au#harry styles x you#harry styles x reader#harry styles x yn#boyfriend!harry#boxer!harry#harry styles solo#harry#harry styles#harry styles story
2K notes
¡
View notes